Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n faith_n point_n propose_v 5,983 5 10.1353 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A13155 An abridgement or suruey of poperie conteining a compendious declaration of the grounds, doctrines, beginnings, proceedings, impieties, falsities, contradictions, absurdities, fooleries, and other manifold abuses of that religion, which the Pope and his complices doe now mainteine, and vvherewith they haue corrupted and deformed the true Christian faith, opposed vnto Matthew Kellisons Suruey of the new religion, as he calleth it, and all his malicious inuectiues and lies, by Matthevv Sutcliffe. Sutcliffe, Matthew, 1550?-1629. 1606 (1606) STC 23448; ESTC S117929 224,206 342

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

sincere_o than_o they_o albeit_o we_o detest_v and_o renounce_v all_o popery_n but_o all_o those_o error_n and_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n both_o concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n which_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o lover_n by_o colour_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o by_o his_o persuasion_n and_o enforcement_n from_o time_n to_o time_n bave_v receive_v profess_a and_o teach_v either_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n &_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o else_o above_o the_o same_o and_o above_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n neither_o do_v we_o otherwise_o single_a popery_n from_o christian_a religion_n than_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n do_v distinguish_v arianisme_n macedonianisme_n nestorianisme_n eutychianisme_n pelagianisme_n and_o other_o heresy_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n for_o although_o the_o arian_n macedonian_n nestorian_n eutychian_o pelagian_o and_o other_o heretic_n do_v hold_v in_o term_n the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n yet_o for_o that_o the_o first_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o three_o the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o four_o the_o verity_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n the_o five_o the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o add_v diverse_a novelty_n to_o the_o ancient_a faith_n they_o be_v repute_v heretic_n and_o by_o their_o heresy_n ancient_a christian_n understand_v not_o any_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o their_o singular_a opinion_n which_o they_o maintain_v obstinate_o against_o the_o faith_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v teach_v that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n jesus_n and_o deliver_v the_o same_o to_o their_o successor_n and_o they_o to_o other_o the_o first_o christian_n likewise_o receive_v the_o same_o pure_a and_o without_o corruption_n but_o as_o the_o envious_a man_n while_o the_o man_n of_o the_o house_n sleep_v sow_v tare_n among_o good_a corn_n as_o we_o read_v matth._n 13._o so_o false_a apostle_n and_o heretic_n from_o time_n to_o time_n have_v go_v about_o with_o their_o cockle_n and_o tare_n to_o corrupt_v the_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o faith_n abuse_v the_o negligence_n of_o true_a teacher_n to_o their_o own_o advantage_n but_o yet_o none_o more_o cunning_o and_o fraudulent_o than_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o complice_n for_o other_o heretic_n be_v soon_o espy_v by_o their_o opposition_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n &_o christ_n true_a church_n timely_o betray_v themselves_o but_o these_o under_o the_o title_n of_o apostolic_a man_n and_o catholic_n have_v corrupt_v the_o apostolic_a and_o catholic_a faith_n and_o under_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o church_n have_v undermine_v the_o foundation_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o under_o their_o sheep_n clothing_n have_v cover_v their_o raven_a and_o wolvish_a nature_n and_o so_o have_v they_o lurk_v many_o year_n mingle_v their_o tradition_n and_o invention_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o for_o truth_n deliver_v erroneous_a and_o superstitious_a doctrine_n and_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n endeavour_v to_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n at_o the_o first_o they_o clog_v religion_n with_o diverse_a superfluous_a and_o superstitious_a ceremony_n &_o load_v christian_n with_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o decretales_fw-la and_o censure_n but_o in_o the_o end_n they_o corrupt_v both_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n &_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n boniface_n the_o 3._o obtain_v of_o phocas_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v repute_v head_n of_o other_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o the_o wicked_a assembly_n under_o irene_n that_o semipagan_a empress_n at_o nice_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n begin_v first_o to_o be_v establish_v &_o this_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n willing_o embrace_v use_v this_o occasion_n to_o establish_v their_o own_o kingdom_n &_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o emperor_n then_o also_o the_o superstitious_a worship_n of_o saint_n relic_n begin_v to_o be_v authorise_v and_o unwritten_a tradition_n under_o the_o title_n of_o apostolic_a authority_n to_o be_v commend_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o three_o action_n of_o that_o synod_n the_o french_a king_n charles_n the_o great_a and_o his_o father_n pipin_n and_o other_o their_o successor_n endow_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o great_a temporal_a possession_n which_o make_v they_o strong_a and_o powerful_a nicolas_n the_o 2._o in_o a_o certain_a synod_n at_o rome_n first_o decree_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o handle_v with_o the_o priest_n hand_n and_o press_v with_o the_o tooth_n and_o this_o fall_v out_o about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1059._o gregory_n the_o 7._o first_o begin_v to_o handle_v the_o temporal_a sword_n and_o manifest_o to_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o roman_a emperor_n before_o his_o time_n say_v otho_n frisingensis_n we_o do_v not_o read_v of_o any_o emperor_n excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n nether_a do_v ever_o any_o bishop_n of_o rome_n presume_v to_o depose_v the_o emperor_n before_o he_o some_o allege_v ambroses_n example_n but_o that_o show_v that_o bishop_n never_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o depose_v prince_n but_o only_o to_o refrain_v from_o communicate_v with_o they_o that_o which_o gregory_n the_o seven_o begin_v that_o in_o the_o end_n his_o successor_n obtain_v for_o by_o their_o practice_n they_o subdue_v the_o emperor_n and_o give_v way_n to_o the_o turk_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v first_o establish_v by_o innocent_a the_o three_o in_o a_o synod_n at_o lateran_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1215._o then_o also_o come_v in_o the_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v bring_v in_o first_o by_o the_o synod_n at_o constance_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1414._o there_o also_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o accident_n in_o the_o eucharist_n do_v subsist_v without_o a_o subject_n in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1439._o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n and_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v decree_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o synod_n there_o also_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o 7._o sacrament_n be_v first_o propound_v to_o the_o armenian_n as_o proceed_v from_o the_o synod_n neither_o do_v we_o read_v of_o the_o form_n of_o extreme_a unction_n and_o other_o popish_a sacrament_n there_o set_v down_o before_o this_o time_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o error_n and_o superstition_n of_o popery_n be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1564._o for_o before_o that_o time_n the_o schoolman_n dispute_v pro_fw-la and_o contra_fw-la but_o since_o that_o they_o have_v make_v it_o unlawful_a to_o hold_v otherwise_o than_o that_o synod_n prescribe_v in_o matter_n there_o new_o determine_v now_o they_o have_v as_o it_o be_v give_v a_o perfect_a form_n and_o full_a authority_n to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o before_o be_v not_o either_o perfect_o know_v of_o all_o or_o in_o all_o point_n allow_v of_o all_o so_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o papist_n vant_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n yet_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o the_o full_a establishment_n of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v now_o deliver_v can_v be_v prove_v or_o show_v before_o this_o conventicle_n than_o their_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o office_n receive_v a_o great_a alteration_n or_o rather_o a_o new_a form_n than_o they_o innovate_v diverse_a point_n of_o doctrine_n both_o concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n to_o relate_v all_o the_o particular_a error_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v a_o matter_n infinite_a for_o there_o be_v no_o point_n almost_o wherein_o the_o papist_n vary_v not_o from_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o article_n concern_v the_o holy_a trinity_n except_v beside_o that_o they_o vary_v in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v daily_a but_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o popery_n wherein_o we_o charge_v they_o to_o have_v digress_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v these_o first_o they_o have_v teach_v novelty_n and_o false_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o faith_n the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n but_o they_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o c._n 1._o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v first_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o afterward_o deliver_v the_o same_o in_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v be_v a_o
we_o shall_v have_v further_a occasion_n to_o speak_v hereafter_o second_o see_v the_o papist_n be_v not_o certain_a of_o their_o ground_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o religion_n of_o papist_n be_v most_o uncertain_a that_o they_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o their_o ground_n diverse_a argument_n declare_v for_o neither_o be_v they_o certain_a whether_o clement_n leo_n or_o any_o other_o sit_v in_o the_o pope_n chair_n be_v true_a pope_n nor_o can_v they_o assure_v themselves_o whether_o the_o decretales_fw-la which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n be_v indeed_o their_o decretales_fw-la who_o name_n they_o carry_v antonius_n contius_n a_o learned_a papist_n in_o a_o certain_a annotation_n of_o his_o add_v to_o the_o ch_n sancta_fw-la do_v 15._o in_o plantin_n edition_n say_v that_o all_o the_o decretales_fw-la set_v out_o under_o name_n of_o pope_n before_o silvester_n be_v false_a and_o this_o he_o say_v he_o have_v show_v manifest_o further_o it_o can_v be_v pron_v that_o all_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v right_a and_o equal_a nay_o contrary_a we_o have_v by_o diverse_a most_o certain_a demonstration_n prove_v that_o both_o concern_v scripture_n faith_n the_o law_n sacrament_n prayer_n the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o diverse_a point_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v determine_v contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o say_v as_o shall_v hereafter_o more_o particular_o appear_v three_o it_o be_v plain_a impudency_n to_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n institute_v the_o consecration_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n the_o form_n of_o hallow_v of_o church_n salt_n water_n and_o all_o popish_a trinket_n the_o form_n of_o pray_v upon_o bead_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o romish_a tradition_n neither_o shall_v kellison_n ever_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v all_o those_o report_n which_o his_o teacher_n have_v receive_v by_o tradition_n and_o public_o heretofore_o set_v forth_o and_o now_o read_v out_o of_o their_o legend_n four_o diverse_a of_o those_o 84._o canon_n which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v disclaim_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_o and_o the_o rest_n can_v be_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n the_o papist_n themselves_o have_v no_o certainty_n most_o confess_v 20._o as_o ruffian_n and_o pope_n stephen_n &_o other_o in_o c._n vigint_n do_v 16._o gratian_n under_o the_o testimony_n of_o athanasius_n tell_v we_o of_o 70._o c._n septuaginta_fw-la do_v 16._o now_o one_o alphonsus_n a_o pisa_fw-la a_o jebusite_n have_v publish_v 80._o canon_n the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n suppose_v to_o be_v hold_v under_o silvester_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v all_o counterfeit_a as_o the_o barbarous_a stile_n and_o strange_a form_n of_o government_n represent_v in_o those_o act_n and_o diverse_a barbarous_a name_n and_o other_o argument_n do_v signify_v sometime_o peter_n crabbe_n the_o collector_n of_o counsel_n do_v set_v down_o diverse_a act_n of_o counsel_n not_o only_o differ_v but_o also_o repugnant_a one_o to_o another_o fift_o diverse_a book_n be_v set_v forth_o under_o the_o name_n of_o father_n that_o no_o man_n can_v certain_o say_v be_v write_v by_o the_o father_n who_o name_n they_o carry_v nay_o some_o of_o they_o do_v contain_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n profess_v by_o the_o father_n sixth_o they_o be_v not_o certain_a either_o what_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n diverse_a doctor_n yield_v diverse_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n or_o what_o be_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n for_o sixtus_n quintus_n set_v out_o the_o old_a vulgar_a latin_a translation_n after_o one_o sort_n and_o clement_n the_o eight_o after_o another_o and_o he_o that_o allow_v the_o translation_n of_o sixtus_n quintus_n must_v needs_o condemn_v that_o of_o clement_n the_o eight_o &_o contrariwise_o final_o see_v diverse_a papist_n assign_v diverse_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o scarce_o two_o of_o many_o do_v agree_v in_o all_o point_n concern_v their_o foundation_n and_o the_o assurance_n of_o they_o how_o can_v they_o pretend_v either_o unity_n or_o certainty_n in_o their_o religion_n three_o the_o foundation_n of_o popery_n be_v lay_v upon_o false_a decretal_n and_o lie_v legend_n hardly_o shall_v our_o adversary_n be_v able_a to_o deny_v their_o religion_n to_o be_v false_a and_o full_a of_o lie_n that_o the_o pope_n do_v in_o their_o decretales_fw-la report_v notorious_a lie_v it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o decretale_n set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o innocentius_n c._n quis_fw-la nesciat_fw-la do_v 11._o where_o he_o deni_v that_o any_o teach_v or_o gather_v church_n in_o france_n spain_n africa_n italy_n beside_o s._n peter_n and_o those_o which_o be_v send_v by_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n and_o likewise_o by_o the_o decretale_a of_o gregory_n the_o 4._o c._n in_o praeceptis_fw-la do_v 12._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o cause_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o the_o head_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o receive_v direction_n from_o whence_o it_o receive_v his_o beginning_n and_o by_o the_o chapter_n in_o novo_fw-la do_v 21._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v peter_n their_o prince_n and_o infinite_a other_o that_o the_o legend_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o receptacle_n of_o many_o tradition_n be_v full_a of_o lie_n i_o have_v show_v else_o where_o if_o kellison_n the_o survey_v or_o deny_v this_o let_v he_o prove_v unto_o we_o that_o s._n george_n kill_v a_o dragon_n ready_a to_o devour_v the_o king_n daughter_n of_o silena_n and_o conquer_a palestine_n that_o catharine_n overcome_v 50._o philosopher_n and_o convert_v the_o empress_n and_o the_o general_a of_o the_o emperor_n army_n and_o break_v a_o wheel_n with_o her_o prayer_n that_o with_o turn_v kill_v 4000_o pagan_n that_o s._n nicholas_n be_v a_o infant_n fast_v wednesday_n and_o friday_n that_o bernacus_fw-la yoke_v heart_n that_o saint_n brendan_n sail_v into_o paradise_n that_o a_o crucifix_n of_o wood_n resaluted_a bartilmew_n a_o monk_n of_o durrham_n that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n body_n be_v carry_v into_o heaven_n by_o angel_n that_o her_o house_n be_v carry_v over_o the_o sea_n first_o into_o dalmatia_n and_o then_o into_o italy_n and_o last_o to_o loreto_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o tale_n four_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o as_o oft_o as_o the_o pope_n die_v the_o church_n be_v without_o foundation_n it_o follow_v also_o that_o the_o pope_n go_v to_o hell_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o chap._n sipapa_n do_v 40._o that_o he_o may_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v lie_v in_o hell_n that_o the_o pope_n fall_v into_o heresy_n as_o liberius_n honorius_n 1_o john_n the_o 22._o and_o diverse_a other_o have_v do_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v fail_v which_o be_v matter_n absurd_a and_o impious_a to_o affirm_v five_o see_v diverse_a old_a tradition_n be_v now_o out_o of_o use_n as_o for_o example_n that_o of_o celebrate_v baptism_n at_o easter_n and_o pray_v stand_v betwixt_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n and_o of_o pray_v with_o our_o face_n turn_v to_o the_o east_n and_o such_o like_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o foundation_n of_o popery_n be_v ruinous_a for_o why_o may_v not_o the_o like_o happen_v to_o other_o tradition_n as_o to_o these_o and_o if_o tradition_n be_v temporary_a and_o ruinous_a which_o they_o make_v equal_a to_o holy_a scripture_n what_o can_v they_o allege_v for_o the_o continuance_n and_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la which_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n but_o also_o repugnant_a one_o to_o another_o six_o the_o old_a translation_n differ_v from_o itself_o in_o the_o edition_n of_o sixtus_n quintus_n and_o clement_n the_o eigth_n and_o other_o set_v out_o at_o colein_n louvain_n and_o antwerp_n and_o much_o more_o from_o the_o original_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o hebrew_n and_o new_a in_o greek_a and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o diverse_a in_o the_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o so_o repugnant_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o do_v necessary_o follow_v that_o popish_a religion_n be_v compose_v of_o contrary_a piece_n and_o can_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v one_o and_o have_v only_o one_o firm_a foundation_n final_o there_o can_v be_v no_o consent_n or_o unity_n in_o the_o point_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n for_o that_o the_o same_o consist_v of_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o pope_n and_o be_v ground_v upon_o contrary_a tradition_n contrary_a legend_n contrary_a interpretation_n of_o father_n and_o schoolman_n and_o either_o of_o tradition_n or_o decretales_fw-la contrary_a to_o scripture_n or_o of_o sentence_n of_o father_n contrary_a to_o
commit_v fornication_n in_o thought_n than_o to_o marry_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o only_o covet_v but_o also_o usurp_v diverse_a part_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o thus_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o law_n the_o papist_n not_o only_o by_o their_o practice_n but_o also_o by_o their_o doctrine_n overthrow_v the_o law_n the_o pope_n by_o his_o dispensation_n annull_v and_o frustrate_v the_o law_n his_o complice_n more_o regard_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la than_o the_o eternal_a law_n of_o the_o live_a god_n this_o law_n of_o god_n they_o say_v may_v be_v persect_o perform_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o action_n they_o hold_v that_o it_o may_v be_v perform_v without_o grace_n ex_fw-la quo_fw-la efficitur_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr lib._n arbit_fw-la c._n 9_o tot_o be_o dei_fw-la legem_fw-la absque_fw-la auxilio_fw-la gratiae_fw-la quoad_fw-la substant_a iam_fw-la actionis_fw-la ab_fw-la hominibus_fw-la recte_fw-la seruari_fw-la posse_fw-la in_o the_o same_o book_n c._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o without_o any_o special_a help_n of_o god_n man_n may_v know_v veritatem_fw-la moralem_fw-la or_o the_o moral_a law_n with_o the_o circumstance_n thereof_o which_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n declare_v man_n weakness_n and_o blindness_n but_o also_o overthrow_v the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n for_o if_o man_n without_o grace_n both_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o be_v able_a according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o action_n to_o perform_v the_o law_n then_o be_v he_o not_o dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v nor_o do_v the_o papist_n believe_v in_o christ_n which_o say_v without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o popery_n be_v false_a erroneous_a and_o repugnant_a to_o god_n law_n &_o the_o ancient_a faith_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n chap._n four_o of_o the_o damnable_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v faith_n and_o justification_n the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n but_o the_o papist_n do_v so_o handle_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o same_o can_v quicken_v any_o but_o be_v like_o rather_o to_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o fall_n and_o death_n of_o many_o first_o they_o teach_v that_o justify_n faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o firm_a assent_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o a_o firm_a assent_n to_o every_o word_n of_o god_n do_v justify_v then_o be_v christian_n justify_v by_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o devil_n as_o well_o as_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o as_o well_o be_v they_o justify_v by_o believe_v the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n as_o believe_v that_o grace_n and_o mercy_n be_v offer_v they_o in_o jesus_n christ_n nay_o as_o well_o may_v the_o devil_n have_v justify_v say_v as_o faithful_a christian_n for_o they_o do_v give_v their_o assent_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v truth_n but_o these_o be_v most_o damnable_a doctrine_n second_o they_o say_v that_o christian_n be_v as_o well_o to_o believe_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o write_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o doctor_n of_o trent_n will_v have_v both_o receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n the_o author_n of_o the_o censure_n of_o colleinsol_n 91._o teach_v christian_n to_o believe_v not_o only_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n but_o also_o such_o point_n as_o be_v deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n but_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v then_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o christian_n be_v as_o well_o to_o believe_v the_o pope_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o god_n himself_o and_o that_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o man_n word_n and_o not_o only_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o last_o that_o faith_n be_v build_v not_o only_o upon_o uncertainty_n but_o also_o upon_o falsehood_n for_o such_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n many_o be_v uncertain_a and_o some_o very_a false_a and_o erroneous_a as_o be_v particular_o show_v in_o diverse_a treatise_n against_o romish_a tradition_n three_o they_o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o gift_n and_o light_n by_o which_o a_o man_n be_v illustrate_v do_v firm_o assent_v &_o adhere_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n est_fw-la dei_fw-la donum_fw-la &_o lumen_fw-la say_v canisius_n cathechismi_n c._n 1._o quo_fw-la illustrate_v we_o homo_fw-la firmiter_fw-la assentitur_fw-la atque_fw-la adhaeret_fw-la ijs_fw-la quae_fw-la ut_fw-la credantur_fw-la sunt_fw-la divinitus_fw-la revelata_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nobis_fw-la proposita_fw-la now_o by_o the_o church_n they_o understand_v the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o this_o it_o follow_v first_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o faith_n for_o how_o can_v a_o church_n propose_v and_o teach_v matter_n to_o itself_o this_o do_v utter_o destroy_v the_o nature_n of_o relation_n and_o therefore_o i_o think_v the_o learned_a romanist_n will_v hardly_o confess_v this_o to_o be_v true_a it_o follow_v next_o that_o christian_n be_v neither_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n nor_o to_o profess_v the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n unless_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n propose_v they_o unto_o us._n but_o this_o be_v most_o absurd_a and_o impious_a for_o we_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o not_o in_o the_o pope_n nor_o in_o the_o church_n adhere_v to_o he_o that_o these_o consequent_n be_v good_a it_o be_v evident_a because_o they_o no_o less_o require_v that_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o that_o they_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n four_o as_o well_o do_v canisius_n require_v that_o christian_n believe_v that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o papist_n do_v hold_v it_o as_o the_o article_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o christ_n incarnation_n for_o all_o these_o article_n he_o join_v together_o catech._n c._n 1._o §_o 4._o but_o he_o can_v not_o say_v worse_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n for_o the_o popish_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v contrary_a to_o christ_n meaning_n to_o word_n of_o scripture_n exposition_n of_o father_n the_o nature_n of_o sacrament_n and_o to_o humane_a reason_n and_o fence_n as_o at_o large_a be_v justify_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la against_o bellarmine_n five_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o wicked_a and_o reprobate_a nay_o that_o the_o devil_n of_o hell_n may_v have_v true_a faith_n but_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v john_n 3_o that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n so_o it_o follow_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n that_o the_o reprobate_n and_o the_o devil_n of_o hell_n may_v be_v save_v six_o they_o affirm_v that_o charity_n be_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o just_a do_v live_v by_o faith_n of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o faith_n have_v a_o form_n of_o itself_o whereby_o it_o quicken_v us._n furthermore_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o make_v one_o virtue_n or_o habit_n the_o form_n of_o another_o and_o if_o this_o be_v tolerable_a that_o one_o quality_n be_v the_o form_n of_o another_o yet_o will_v it_o seem_v far_o more_o probable_a that_o faith_n shall_v be_v the_o form_n and_o life_n of_o charity_n and_o work_n for_o that_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o please_v god_n than_o that_o charity_n shall_v be_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n which_o do_v follow_v of_o faith_n seventh_o the_o jebusite_n of_o collein_n fol._n 122._o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v only_o of_o general_a proposition_n and_o hope_v of_o particular_n so_o it_o follow_v of_o their_o doctrine_n that_o no_o christian_n ought_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o or_o any_o other_o particular_a person_n have_v his_o sin_n forgive_v or_o be_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o if_o this_o be_v true_a then_o do_v not_o the_o jebusite_n believe_v that_o themselves_o shall_v rise_v again_o or_o appear_v in_o judgement_n further_o then_o can_v they_o not_o believe_v that_o pope_n clement_n or_o leo_n or_o paul_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o they_o be_v to_o subject_v themselves_o unto_o he_o or_o that_o this_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o such_o other_o particular_a proposition_n eight_o they_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o by_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n but_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 1._o show_v that_o christ_n be_v make_v to_o
respuunt_fw-la they_o believe_v not_o also_o that_o child_n die_v young_a shall_v possess_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o do_v not_o all_o sect_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n among_o the_o papist_n exclude_v marry_v folk_n out_o of_o their_o cloister_n do_v not_o the_o masspriest_n also_o exclude_v all_o child_n die_v before_o baptism_n yea_o where_o it_o be_v much_o desire_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 33._o priscillian_n say_v augustine_n haeres_fw-la 70._o disjoin_v marry_v folk_n his_o word_n be_v coniuges_fw-la disiungens_fw-la his_o follower_n to_o hide_v their_o filthy_a opinion_n and_o beastliness_n make_v no_o account_n to_o forswear_v themselves_o propter_fw-la occultandas_fw-la contaminationes_fw-la &_o turpitudines_fw-la svas_fw-la habent_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la dogmatibus_fw-la iura_fw-la periura_fw-la secretum_fw-la prodere_fw-la noli_fw-la they_o refuse_v also_o to_o eat_v flesh_n as_o unclean_a meat_n and_o come_v not_o the_o papist_n near_o they_o in_o these_o point_n that_o separate_a monk_n and_o priest_n that_o do_v marry_v from_o their_o wife_n and_o teach_v their_o scholar_n to_o forswear_v themselves_o the_o rhemiste_n in_o act._n 23._o say_v that_o oath_n take_v against_o papist_n which_o they_o false_o call_v catholic_n may_v and_o must_v be_v break_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n this_o perjury_n be_v also_o allow_v by_o 2._o rinegued_a english_a traitor_n allen_n and_o parson_n in_o their_o resolution_n of_o case_n of_o conscience_n wherein_o they_o teach_v their_o scholar_n to_o play_v the_o villain_n and_o to_o perjure_v themselves_o with_o a_o good_a popish_a conscience_n the_o carthusian_n also_o and_o diverse_a monk_n forswear_v eat_v flesh_n which_o they_o can_v do_v in_o reason_n but_o that_o they_o think_v it_o less_o clean_a than_o fish_n 34._o the_o helcesaites_n make_v christ_n in_o heaven_n to_o differ_v from_o christ_n on_o earth_n as_o theodoret._n de_fw-fr haeret_fw-la fab_n c._n de_fw-fr helcesaeis_n do_v testify_v christum_fw-la non_fw-la unum_fw-la dicunt_fw-la say_v he_o say_v hune_v quidem_fw-la supernè_fw-la illum_fw-la infernè_fw-la so_fw-ge papist_n above_o make_n christ_n visible_a and_o palpable_a but_o in_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o visible_a nor_o palpable_a 35._o the_o eutychianistes_n deny_v that_o christ_n after_o the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n have_v a_o true_a body_n but_o as_o leo_n signify_v ser_n 6._o de_fw-la teiumo_fw-la 7._o mensis_fw-la a_o body_n without_o shape_n dimension_n or_o circumscription_n they_o say_v also_o that_o christ_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o one_o time_n against_o who_o vigilius_n dispute_v lib._n 4._o contr_n eutych_n c._n 4._o say_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n when_o it_o be_v on_o earth_n be_v not_o in_o heaven_n and_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n be_v not_o on_o earth_n and_o these_o point_n of_o eutychianisme_n the_o papist_n have_v retain_v for_o they_o say_v christ_n body_n be_v real_o in_o the_o eucharist_n where_o no_o shape_n nor_o dimension_n of_o a_o body_n do_v appear_v they_o say_v also_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o one_o time_n which_o take_v away_o all_o circumscription_n from_o christ_n body_n and_o be_v contrary_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o vigilius_n theodoret_n also_o dial._n 2._o do_v refute_v this_o heresy_n by_o similitude_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n after_o consecration_n 36._o the_o papist_n also_o in_o many_o point_n conspire_v with_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n grace_n the_o pelagian_n augustine_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 88_o say_v that_o they_o hold_v that_o without_o grace_n a_o man_n may_v perform_v all_o god_n commandment_n and_o bellarmine_n the_o great_a &_o lib._n arb_n lib._n 5._o c._n 5._o &_o 9_o have_v these_o word_n solis_fw-la naturae_fw-la viribus_fw-la posse_fw-la aliquem_fw-la ad_fw-la brevissi●un_fw-la tempus_fw-la omne_fw-la sernare_fw-la scilicet_fw-la divina_fw-la mandata_fw-la he_o shift_v off_o the_o matter_n by_o add_v quoad_fw-la substantiam_fw-la operis_fw-la but_o the_o pelagiani_n no_o doubt_n be_v press_v will_v say_v so_o much_o nay_o if_o man_n have_v freewill_n as_o well_o to_o observe_v the_o law_n as_o to_o break_v the_o same_o then_o must_v he_o needs_o be_v able_a always_o to_o perform_v all_o the_o law_n by_o force_n of_o his_o freewill_n the_o pelagian_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v without_o all_o sin_n so_o likewise_o do_v the_o papist_n in_o effect_n for_o they_o say_v that_o every_o man_n have_v freewill_n to_o abstain_v from_o all_o sin_n and_o bellarmme_n lib._n 4._o the_o iustific_a c._n 11._o say_v that_o man_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o of_o which_o it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o he_o may_v be_v without_o sin_n for_o he_o that_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o be_v without_o all_o sin_n they_o teach_v that_o concupiscence_n by_o baptism_n be_v sanctify_v and_o be_v before_o evil_n do_v afterward_o begin_v not_o to_o be_v evil_a as_o may_v be_v collect_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n lib._n 6._o contr_n inlianum_fw-la c._n 6._o and_o their_o argument_n be_v for_o that_o the_o guilt_n of_o concupiscence_n be_v remoove_v by_o baptism_n the_o papist_n also_o hold_v that_o concupiscence_n after_o baptisine_n be_v no_o sin_n and_o of_o this_o it_o follow_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v sanctify_v by_o baptism_n the_o pelagian_o say_v that_o we_o have_v a_o strong_a and_o firm_a freewill_n not_o to_o sin_n and_o the_o censurer_n of_o colein_n and_o bellarmine_n in_o diverse_a place_n affirm_v that_o sin_n be_v subject_a to_o our_o will_n and_o that_o man_n by_o freewill_n have_v power_n to_o do_v good_a and_o to_o abstain_v from_o evil_a he_o that_o listen_v to_o fee_v diverse_a other_o point_n of_o concordance_n between_o papist_n and_o pelagian_o let_v he_o read_v my_o last_o challenge_n andradius_fw-la handle_v the_o point_n of_o freewill_n say_v that_o philosopher_n by_o force_n of_o their_o freewill_n be_v able_a to_o attain_v true_a faith_n and_o justice_n by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v save_v do_v not_o then_o papist_n come_v near_a pelagian_n 37._o the_o donatist_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v haeres_fw-la 69._o believe_v that_o christ_n church_n be_v confine_v in_o africa_n and_o remain_v in_o the_o faction_n of_o donatus_n quod_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christian_n africa_n &_o donati_n parte_fw-la remanserit_fw-la they_o rebaptise_v also_o catholic_a christian_n the_o papist_n likewise_o confine_v the_o church_n within_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o rome_n and_o saction_n of_o the_o pope_n they_o presume_v also_o to_o rebaptize_v better_a christian_n then_o themselves_o 38._o as_o the_o circumcellion_n so_o the_o papist_n think_v it_o meritorious_a to_o kill_v all_o that_o be_v opposite_a to_o their_o sect_n as_o the_o practice_n of_o pius_n the_o five_o sixtus_n the_o five_o and_o other_o pope_n against_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o french_a king_n henry_n the_o three_o and_o four_o prince_n maurice_n and_o diverse_a other_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n the_o massacre_n of_o france_n and_o flanders_n do_v show_v sixtus_n quintus_fw-la do_v commend_v the_o execrable_a murder_n commit_v by_o james_n clement_n a_o dominican_n friar_n john_n ghineard_n a_o jebusite_n be_v hang_v for_o maintain_v the_o bloody_a doctrine_n of_o murder_a prince_n excommunicate_a by_o the_o pope_n 39_o sigebertus_n gemblacensis_fw-la do_v account_v it_o a_o heresy_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v assoil_v subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n or_o excommunicate_a such_o as_o will_v not_o rebel_v against_o prince_n haresis_fw-la say_v he_o pestilentissima_fw-la populum_fw-la percellit_fw-la yet_o this_o heresy_n do_v papist_n maintain_v both_o by_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v 40._o the_o audean_o or_o anthropomorphite_n do_v imagine_v god_n to_o have_v a_o shape_n and_o figure_n like_o to_o a_o man_n which_o if_o the_o papist_n do_v not_o believe_v then_o why_o do_v they_o worship_v god_n the_o father_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o old_a man_n and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o the_o likeness_n of_o god_n but_o of_o a_o apparition_n why_o do_v they_o give_v god_n honour_n to_o their_o own_o fancy_n 41._o origens_n heresy_n be_v that_o he_o believe_v that_o the_o damn_a might_n in_o the_o end_n be_v save_v as_o augustine_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 43._o show_v from_o this_o they_o digress_v not_o far_o that_o believe_v that_o traiaus_n soul_n be_v fetch_v out_o of_o hell_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o gregory_n furthermore_o if_o purgarorie_n be_v in_o hell_n why_o may_v not_o soul_n as_o well_o be_v fetch_v out_o of_o other_o part_n as_o that_o part_n of_o hell_n 42._o eunomius_n teach_v that_o so_o a_o man_n be_v of_o his_o religion_n it_o skill_a not_o great_o what_o sin_n he_o commit_v asseverabat_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la c._n 54._o quod_fw-la nihl_fw-ge cviquam_fw-la obesset_fw-la quorumlibet_fw-la perpetratio_fw-la ac_fw-la perseverantia_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la
the_o pope_n law_n as_o the_o resistance_n of_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n against_o victor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n against_o sozimus_n and_o other_o pope_n declare_v 20._o of_o late_a time_n friar_n especial_o the_o capucin_n have_v attire_v themselves_o like_o chimney_n sweeper_n &_o burner_n of_o house_n 21._o the_o rule_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n be_v diverse_a from_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o can_v not_o be_v elder_a than_o the_o order_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n 22._o gregory_n the_o seven_o as_o otho_n frisingensis_n say_v be_v the_o first_o that_o do_v excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n and_o teach_v that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o assoil_v subject_n from_o the_o other_o of_o obedience_n to_o prince_n 23._o the_o use_n of_o private_a mass_n without_o communion_n be_v but_o new_a as_o the_o old_a ordinall_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v no_o mass_n of_o that_o nature_n declare_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v christian_n to_o depart_v before_o they_o receive_v the_o communion_n 24._o innocent_n the_o three_o in_o the_o chap._n omnis_fw-la utriusque_fw-la de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la &_o remiss_a do_v first_o bring_v in_o a_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n he_o also_o be_v the_o first_o father_n of_o the_o monster_n transubstantiation_n as_o we_o find_v by_o the_o chapter_n firmiter_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trinit_fw-la &_o fid_fw-we cathol_n 25._o purgatory_n for_o satisfaction_n for_o temporal_a pain_n of_o sin_n who_o guilt_n before_o be_v remit_v be_v first_o devise_v by_o schoolman_n 26._o the_o jubiley_n among_o christian_n be_v first_o devise_v by_o boniface_n the_o eigth_n he_o also_o decree_v first_o that_o all_o temporal_a prince_n and_o other_o upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n 27._o popish_a indulgence_n be_v but_o of_o a_o late_a stamp_n and_o the_o school_n doctrine_n thereof_o much_o latter_a the_o papist_n themselves_o be_v as_o yet_o not_o full_o resolve_v what_o to_o think_v of_o they_o 28._o clement_n the_o six_o first_o devise_v the_o treasure_n out_o of_o which_o indulgence_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v grant_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o chap._n unigenitus_fw-la extr_n depoenit_fw-la &_o remiss_a 29._o the_o doctrine_n of_o case_n reserve_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o once_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n and_o yet_o the_o masspriest_n make_v a_o great_a matter_n of_o they_o 30._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n penitentiary_n tax_v for_o dispatch_v of_o pardon_n for_o murder_n incest_n sodomy_n and_o all_o villainy_n i_o think_v kellison_n will_v not_o contend_v to_o be_v very_o ancient_a 31._o bellarmine_n doctrine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 3._o concern_v the_o new_a testament_n where_o he_o say_v it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o love_n of_o god_n shed_v into_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v new_a for_o it_o contradict_v chrysostome_n theodoret_n and_o other_o in_o 2._o cor._n 3._o who_o teach_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v god_n grace_n remit_v sin_n 32._o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n between_o spiritual_a gossip_n be_v a_o late_a device_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o gain_v 33._o the_o separation_n of_o marry_a couple_n for_o religion_n before_o consummation_n of_o marriage_n without_o consent_n of_o both_o the_o party_n be_v both_o new_a and_o wicked_a 34._o the_o popish_a ceremony_n use_v in_o baptism_n be_v of_o a_o late_a invention_n as_o for_o example_n salt_n spittle_n candle_n and_o popish_a exorcism_n 35._o of_o late_o they_o have_v begin_v to_o exorcise_v salt_n in_o salutem_fw-la credentium_fw-la for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o holy_a water_n to_o cast_v our_o devil_n and_o to_o drive_v away_o discase_n these_o consuration_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o old_a romish_a ordinal_n 36._o the_o masseppriest_n have_v now_o get_v a_o new_a trick_n to_o sprinkle_v the_o altar_n with_o holy_a water_n and_o to_o say_v thou_o shall_v sprinkle_v i_o with_o hyssop_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v cleanse_v apply_v the_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 37._o honorius_n the_o three_o in_o the_o chapter_n sane_fw-la cum_fw-la olim_fw-la de_fw-fr celebr_fw-fr miss_v do_v first_o ordain_v that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v worship_v and_o safe_o keep_v and_o carry_v with_o light_n to_o those_o that_o be_v sick_a 38._o half_n communion_n be_v direct_v contrary_a to_o christ_n institution_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o first_o establish_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n 39_o the_o mass_n can_v be_v old_a for_o that_o nauclerus_fw-la platina_n polydore_n and_o other_o confess_v be_v be_v innent_v by_o diverse_a author_n long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n 40._o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a now_o find_v in_o the_o mass_n be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o book_n call_v ordo_fw-la romanus_n 41._o in_o old_a time_n the_o father_n never_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n invisible_a and_o incircumscriptible_a and_o that_o may_v be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n 42._o the_o godly_a bishop_n of_o old_a time_n do_v neither_o swinge_n the_o chalice_n about_o their_o head_n nor_o make_v cross_n about_o it_o when_o they_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n 43._o the_o say_n of_o service_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n in_o tongue_n not_o understand_v be_v a_o foolish_a novelty_n 44._o now_o in_o the_o roman_a catechism_n they_o teach_v that_o every_o mass-priest_n consecrate_v work_v three_o miracle_n but_o in_o old_a time_n they_o be_v never_o take_v for_o such_o worker_n of_o miracle_n 45._o the_o papist_n after_o their_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la say_v their_o ave_fw-la maria_n and_o pray_v to_o our_o lady_n which_o practice_n be_v neither_o ancient_a nor_o apostolical_a 46._o the_o psalter_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o her_o peculiar_a office_n and_o mass_n in_o honour_n of_o saint_n will_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o ancient_a precedent_n 47._o hardly_o will_v the_o papist_n bring_v a_o precedent_n of_o 300._o year_n old_a to_o prove_v that_o christian_n pray_v to_o the_o cross_n for_o increase_v of_o justice_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n 48._o in_o the_o missal_n of_o sarum_n the_o priest_n say_v to_o the_o sacrament_n have_v or_o hail_n and_o bow_v to_o it_o contrary_a to_o all_o ancient_a practice_n 49._o the_o worship_n of_o papist_n must_v needs_o be_v new_a for_o that_o both_o their_o saint_n be_v new_a and_o their_o prayer_n and_o office_n new_a 50._o the_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o office_n of_o our_o lady_n have_v their_o antiquity_n from_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n 51._o popish_a idolater_n worship_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o cross_n with_o divine_a honour_n but_o they_o shall_v never_o bring_v allowance_n of_o antiquity_n for_o this_o practice_n 52._o they_o burn_v also_o incense_v to_o dumb_a image_n kiss_v they_o and_o bow_v to_o they_o but_o these_o unchristian_a trick_n be_v not_o know_v in_o old_a time_n 53._o of_o late_a time_n they_o have_v decree_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n but_o it_o be_v since_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n 54._o now_o the_o pope_n pretend_v right_a to_o handle_v the_o temporal_a sword_n but_o that_o do_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n 55._o of_o late_a time_n the_o pope_n have_v tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o emperor_n but_o in_o ancient_a time_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v subject_a to_o emperor_n 56._o in_o time_n past_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v persecute_v and_o martyr_v now_o the_o pope_n of_o late_a time_n persecute_v and_o martyr_v other_o final_o all_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n differ_v from_o the_o faith_n o_o this_o church_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n seek_v now_o to_o thrust_v upon_o christian_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n novelty_n and_o this_o do_v clear_o appear_v in_o this_o for_o that_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o before_o have_v be_v particular_o declare_v the_o same_o be_v also_o coutrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n and_o ancient_a church_n practice_v as_o we_o shall_v declare_v hereafter_o further_o the_o papist_n have_v turn_v the_o whole_a service_n of_o god_n into_o a_o mass_a mommery_n final_o for_o god_n they_o worship_v saint_n and_o dumb_a image_n the_o institution_n of_o christ_n jesus_n in_o the_o eucharist_n they_o have_v alter_v new_a sacrament_n they_o have_v devise_v be_v they_o not_o then_o ashamed_a to_o call_v popery_n ancient_a christian_a religion_n chap._n xvii_o that_o poperic_n be_v repugnant_a to_o ancient_a counsel_n much_o doc_fw-fr papist_n brag_v of_o counsel_n campion_n say_v the_o first_o last_o and_o midst_n be_v he_o concilia_fw-la generalia_fw-la mea_fw-la sunt_fw-la general_a counsel_n say_v he_o be_v all_o for_o i_o
for_o it_o ambrose_n catharine_n tractat_fw-la de_fw-fr imaginibus_fw-la say_v god_n prohibit_v image_n simple_o but_o that_o this_o prohibition_n be_v positive_a other_o deny_v both_o image_n to_o be_v forbid_v and_o the_o second_o commandment_n to_o be_v positive_a occam_n maior_n and_o richardus_fw-la be_v of_o opinion_n that_o a_o sacrament_n can_v be_v define_v scotus_n in_o 4._o do_v 1._o q._n 2._o hold_v that_o it_o may_v be_v define_v imperfect_o ledesma_n in_o tract_n de_fw-fr sacrament_n in_o genere_fw-la q._n 1._o art_n 2._o say_v it_o may_v proper_o be_v define_v final_o to_o show_v the_o contradiction_n of_o papist_n we_o need_v to_o seek_v no_o further_o than_o to_o bellarmine_n who_o in_o every_o controversy_n bring_v in_o different_a opinion_n of_o man_n of_o his_o side_n gardiner_z a_o pillar_n of_o popery_n do_v oftentimes_o contradict_v himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n sometime_o he_o swear_v against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n sometime_o like_o a_o forswear_a creature_n he_o stand_v for_o it_o sometime_o he_o consent_v to_o the_o dissolution_n of_o monastery_n as_o sink_v of_o sodomy_n and_o all_o tibaldrie_n and_o villainy_n sometime_o be_v speak_v for_o they_o his_o book_n entitle_v marcus_n constantius_n be_v full_a of_o contradiction_n m._n fox_n have_v score_v up_o great_a multitude_n the_o contradiction_n of_o robert_n parson_n in_o his_o book_n of_o three_o conversion_n i_o have_v note_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o that_o treatise_n the_o whole_a mass_n also_o of_o popery_n do_v consist_v of_o contrary_a piece_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o contradiction_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o purgatory_n of_o indulgence_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o diverse_a other_o principal_a point_n and_o have_v prove_v the_o same_o in_o treatise_n of_o that_o argument_n for_o example_n they_o say_v the_o mass_n be_v a_o unbloudy_a sacrifice_n and_o yet_o teach_v that_o every_o priest_n do_v real_o offer_v and_o drink_v christ_n blood_n sometime_o they_o say_v the_o sacrifice_n be_v but_o one_o sacrifice_n yet_o in_o the_o canon_n they_o say_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n sometime_o they_o say_v the_o priest_n only_o offer_v this_o sacrifice_n but_o in_o the_o canon_n they_o make_v the_o people_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o canon_n they_o pray_v that_o angel_n may_v carry_v christ_n body_n unto_o god_n high_a altar_n but_o all_o confess_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o heaven_n before_o there_o also_o they_o make_v the_o priest_n a_o mediator_n for_o christ._n but_o where_o they_o speak_v sober_o they_o make_v christ_n a_o mediator_n both_o for_o the_o priest_n and_o other_o in_o heaven_n they_o say_v christ_n be_v visible_a and_o palpable_a on_o the_o altar_n they_o make_v he_o invisible_a and_o impalpable_a they_o say_v the_o mass_n be_v a_o external_a sacrifice_n yet_o no_o man_n ever_o yet_o can_v see_v christ_n body_n external_o sacrifice_v in_o purgatory_n they_o say_v soul_n suffer_v extreme_a pain_n but_o in_o the_o mass_n they_o say_v they_o sl●epe_v in_o peace_n they_o teach_v that_o christian_n may_v perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o but_o they_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o they_o may_v live_v without_o sin_n which_o be_v all_o one_o talk_v of_o auricular_a confession_n they_o make_v it_o necessary_a but_o in_o the_o chap._n petrus_n doluit_fw-la and_o lachrymae_fw-la do_v 1._o de_fw-la poenit_fw-la they_o deny_v it_o the_o pope_n call_v himself_o servant_n of_o servant_n yet_o do_v he_o take_v upon_o he_o as_o lord_n of_o lord_n order_n they_o say_v be_v one_o sacrament_n yet_o they_o teach_v also_o that_o there_o be_v seven_o order_n and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o a_o sacrament_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v make_v one_o seven_o and_o seven_o one_o the_o pope_n they_o say_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v teach_v that_o their_o church_n in_o the_o vacatio_fw-la nis_fw-la headless_a if_o then_o the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v one_o and_o those_o that_o profess_v the_o faith_n agree_v in_o one_o then_o can_v popery_n be_v the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n that_o contain_v so_o many_o contradiction_n chap._n xxvii_o that_o popery_n be_v a_o most_o foolish_a and_o absurd_a religion_n as_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v full_a of_o wisdom_n and_o give_v we_o a_o true_a understanding_n so_o when_o man_n of_o his_o own_o brain_n undertake_v to_o add_v unto_o his_o commandment_n the_o same_o in_o proof_n fall_v out_o to_o be_v nothing_o but_o vanity_n and_o foolery_n the_o same_o we_o sin_v verify_v in_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o superfluous_a religion_n of_o papist_n for_o although_o it_o have_v a_o show_n of_o wisdom_n as_o the_o voluntary_a worship_n of_o angel_n have_v of_o which_o the_o apostle_n coloss_n 2._o speak_v yet_o compare_v with_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v mere_a foolery_n for_o first_o what_o be_v more_o foolish_a then_o to_o forsake_v the_o live_a spring_n of_o holy_a scripture_n out_o of_o which_o do_v sally_v water_n of_o life_n and_o to_o follow_v after_o the_o puddle_n stream_n of_o romish_a tradition_n of_o scripture_n we_o be_v assure_v that_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o no_o man_n can_v affirm_v that_o of_o romish_a tradition_n or_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la that_o either_o profess_v piety_n or_o love_v truth_n be_v it_o not_o then_o strange_a that_o any_o christian_n shall_v be_v so_o foolish_a as_o to_o match_v the_o word_n of_o man_n with_o god_n word_n and_o where_o we_o have_v a_o certain_a rule_n to_o seek_v for_o a_o break_a uncertain_a and_o crooked_a rule_n again_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a not_o to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n without_o the_o pope_n warrant_n but_o to_o say_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n nor_o in_o christ_n jesus_n nor_o to_o receive_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n unless_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v deliver_v they_o unto_o we_o be_v not_o only_o a_o piece_n of_o great_a foolery_n but_o also_o a_o very_a high_a strain_n of_o madness_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n for_o stapleton_n say_v that_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o consign_v the_o scripture_n unto_o we_o and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n both_o he_o and_o other_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n likewise_o in_o their_o catechism_n the_o papist_n signify_v that_o faith_n be_v of_o thing_n only_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n so_o that_o if_o the_o church_n propose_v not_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v they_o if_o these_o man_n teach_v truth_n further_o this_o show_v the_o romish_a church_n to_o consist_v of_o a_o pack_n of_o infidel_n for_o if_o the_o same_o believe_v not_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n than_o do_v she_o believe_v nothing_o of_o christ_n see_v the_o papist_n acknowledge_v no_o other_o church_n but_o that_o of_o rome_n and_o no_o church_n can_v teach_v itself_o final_o this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o prince_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v unless_o it_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o crier_n or_o other_o such_o like_a officer_n the_o masspriest_n of_o trent_n sess_v 4._o most_o absurd_o prefer_v the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n before_o the_o original_a text_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v prefer_v s._n hierome_n and_o other_o interpreter_n before_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o the_o stream_n before_o the_o fountain_n general_o they_o forbid_v scripture_n to_o be_v read_v public_o in_o vulgar_a tongue_n but_o they_o permit_v most_o fabulous_a legend_n to_o be_v read_v public_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o will_v not_o permit_v to_o be_v read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n of_o the_o multitude_n without_o licence_n but_o they_o be_v content_a that_o any_o of_o their_o follower_n shall_v read_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la or_o the_o miracle_n of_o their_o god_n of_o paste_n or_o the_o history_n of_o our_o lady_n of_o loreto_n and_o other_o such_o lie_a legend_n without_o licence_n to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v mere_a foolery_n for_o grant_v that_o and_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o without_o head_n as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o vacation_n of_o the_o papacy_n and_o sometime_o a_o monster_n with_o two_o or_o three_o head_n as_o when_o two_o or_o three_o pope_n reign_n at_o once_o and_o sometime_o a_o mad_a church_n as_o have_v a_o mad_a and_o frantic_a head_n the_o church_n they_o say_v albeit_o catholic_a yet_o be_v always_o visible_a but_o this_o be_v grant_v it_o follow_v that_o universal_a thing_n may_v be_v the_o object_n of_o sense_n and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o
and_o heavy_a death_n as_o if_o a_o sheet_n can_v pray_v for_o we_o or_o deliver_v from_o the_o plague_n do_v they_o not_o deserve_v to_o be_v truss_v in_o a_o cloak-bag_n who_o trust_n be_v in_o a_o counter_a fetch_a winding-sheete_n they_o give_v the_o same_o honour_n to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o the_o cross_n that_o be_v due_a to_o god_n very_o absurd_o transfer_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o creature_n be_v they_o not_o then_o absurd_a worshipper_n that_o can_v distinguish_v between_o god_n and_o creature_n and_o do_v they_o not_o very_o absurd_o deny_v themselves_o to_o be_v idolater_n absurd_o also_o they_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o cross_n whereon_o our_o saviour_n be_v dishonour_v not_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o ass_n on_o which_o he_o be_v honour_v durand_n rat_n divi_z 7._o c._n 11._o dispute_v this_o matter_n be_v much_o puzzle_v about_o it_o they_o believe_v very_o that_o image_n have_v talk_v and_o walk_v and_o all_o this_o because_o it_o be_v say_v so_o in_o the_o legend_n but_o they_o show_v themselves_o very_o foolish_a that_o believe_v legend_n and_o believe_v not_o the_o scripture_n that_o say_v they_o have_v mouth_n and_o speak_v not_o foot_n and_o walk_v not_o the_o ground_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v very_o absurd_a and_o foolish_a for_o they_o sound_v themselves_o upon_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o decretales_fw-la the_o pope_n be_v oftentimes_o soolish_a and_o ignorant_a and_o his_o decretales_fw-la be_v rude_a false_a and_o oftentimes_o ridiculous_a baldus_n in_o c._n 1._o de_fw-fr nature_n feud_n say_v that_o pope_n celestine_n the_o sift_n be_v a_o simple_a fellow_n unum_fw-la pecus_fw-la innocent_n the_o 3._o in_o the_o chap._n solitae_fw-la demaior_n &_o ob_v argue_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o emperor_n because_o the_o sun_n be_v big_a than_o the_o moon_n a_o argument_n mere_o lunatical_a in_o another_o place_n he_o gather_v that_o we_o be_v now_o to_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o deuteronomy_n because_o deuteronomium_n signify_v a_o second_o law_n bonisace_n the_o eight_o in_o the_o chap._n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la extr_n de_fw-fr maior_fw-la &_o ob_v prove_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v above_o all_o prince_n because_o we_o read_v genes_n 1._o that_o god_n in_o the_o beginning_n make_v the_o world_n clement_n the_o 6._o in_o the_o chap._n vnigenitus_fw-la extr_n de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la &_o remiss_a say_v that_o unless_o the_o overplus_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v bestow_v in_o dispense_n the_o treasure_n of_o indulgence_n that_o the_o same_o have_v be_v void_a and_o superfluous_a and_o like_o treasure_n lay_v up_o in_o a_o napkin_n that_o the_o decretales_fw-la be_v full_a of_o lie_n we_o shall_v declare_v when_o we_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o popish-lies_a they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v saint_n peter_n successor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o if_o the_o priest_n that_o baptize_v the_o pope_n have_v no_o intention_n to_o baptize_v he_o than_o he_o be_v no_o member_n of_o the_o church_n if_o he_o that_o order_v the_o pope_n have_v no_o intention_n to_o order_v he_o then_o be_v he_o no_o priest_n if_o he_o have_v no_o intention_n to_o consecrate_v then_o do_v he_o not_o consecrat_v so_o all_o depend_v upon_o man_n secret_a and_o unknowen_a intention_n they_o confess_v also_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n if_o the_o priest_n have_v no_o intention_n to_o consecrat_v of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o all_o papist_n for_o aught_o they_o know_v be_v absurd_a idolater_n their_o ceremony_n be_v full_a of_o foolery_n first_o in_o the_o mass_n the_o priest_n absolu_v the_o clerk_n and_o then_o the_o clerk_n absolu_v the_o priest_n which_o be_v all_o like_a as_o if_o one_o mule_n shall_v scratch_v another_o it_o be_v absurd_a also_o to_o put_v the_o key_n into_o a_o boy_n hand_n that_o be_v no_o priest_n the_o priest_n kiss_v the_o altar_n and_o pray_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o saint_n who_o relic_n be_v there_o contain_v so_o a_o stock_n kiss_v a_o stone_n and_o forget_v christ_n pray_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o saint_n who_o relic_n be_v say_v to_o be_v there_o where_o there_o be_v no_o relic_n at_o all_o and_o percase_o the_o bone_n of_o dog_n or_o ape_n or_o other_o beast_n for_o aught_o the_o wise_a masse-priest_n know_v in_o the_o missale_n of_o sarum_n after_o the_o priest_n have_v consecrate_v he_o make_v a_o low_a leg_n worship_v the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o say_v have_v which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o god_n save_v you_o sir_n or_o you_o be_v welcome_a to_o town_n the_o priest_n be_v apparel_v like_o a_o moriske-dancer_n and_o skip_v and_o dance_v about_o the_o altar_n like_o a_o ape_n in_o a_o chain_n his_o head_n be_v shave_v and_o well_o grease_v his_o hand_n wash_v but_o his_o hart_n unclean_a and_o this_o gallant_a take_v upon_o he_o not_o only_o to_o offer_v christ_n in_o sacrifice_n but_o also_o to_o swallow_v he_o down_o like_o a_o pill_n without_o chaw_v the_o friar_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v apparel_v like_o chimneysweeper_n or_o burner_n of_o house_n with_o a_o hood_n upon_o their_o head_n like_o a_o bag_n of_o hippocrace_n the_o pope_n when_o they_o be_v first_o choose_v do_v cast_v money_n abroad_o say_v argentum_fw-la &_o aurum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la as_o be_v prescribe_v lib._n 1._o caerem._n but_o most_o unlike_a they_o be_v to_o he_o who_o word_n they_o abuse_v further_o absurd_o they_o deny_v themselves_o to_o have_v money_n when_o they_o cast_v money_n a_o broad_a and_o enjoy_v so_o great_a riches_n when_o they_o take_v the_o pope_n from_o the_o pierce_a stool_n where_o his_o humanity_n be_v try_v they_o say_v he_o have_v raise_v the_o poor_a out_o of_o the_o dust_n ex_fw-la stercor_fw-la ariae_fw-la elevante_n dicunt_fw-la suscitat_fw-la de_fw-la puluere_fw-la egenum_fw-la and_o yet_o absurd_o this_o beggar_n as_o they_o say_v be_v lord_n of_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o king_n their_o demand_n and_o answer_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o very_o wise_a austen_n ask_v of_o gregory_n as_o bede_n report_v lib._n 1_o hist_o angl._n c._n 28._o whether_o a_o woman_n with_o child_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v as_o if_o not_o she_o as_o well_o as_o other_o boniface_n of_o mentz_n ask_v the_o pope_n if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o eat_v bacon_n and_o he_o answer_v yea_o but_o provide_v always_o say_v he_o that_o it_o be_v dry_v with_o smoke_n or_o boil_a their_o legend_n be_v feriall_a ruffian_n one_o of_o s._n francis_n his_o scholar_n dispute_v with_o the_o devil_n tell_v he_o he_o will_v do_v sir_n reverence_v in_o his_o mouth_n ruffinus_n dixit_fw-la diabolo_fw-la aperi_fw-la os_fw-la tuum_fw-la &_o ego_fw-la stercorisabo_fw-la in_o illud_fw-la s._n francis_n in_o a_o award_n betwixt_o a_o wolf_n etc._n see_v s._n francis_n his_o conformity_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o man_n of_o eugubium_n condemn_v the_o townsman_n in_o expense_n and_o speak_v to_o the_o wolf_n he_o say_v brother_n wolf_n it_o be_v report_v also_o that_o he_o preach_v to_o swallow_n and_o say_v sorores_fw-la meae_fw-la hirundine_n audite_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la s._n aidus_n as_o capgrave_n tell_v have_v compassion_n on_o 8._o hungry_a wolf_n give_v they_o 8._o of_o his_o lamb_n and_o after_o they_o be_v eat_v get_v they_o out_o of_o the_o wolf_n belly_n by_o prayer_n austen_n the_o monk_n by_o prayer_n obtain_v that_o the_o man_n of_o dorset_n that_o have_v scorn_v he_o and_o all_o their_o posterity_n have_v tail_n belike_o the_o race_n be_v now_o fail_v the_o whole_a legend_n be_v full_a of_o foolish_a fable_n but_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v thereof_o elsewhere_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v absurd_a coemiterium_fw-la say_v durand_n l._n 1._o c._n 5._o dicitur_fw-la a_o cimen_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la dulce_fw-la &_o sterion_n quod_fw-la est_fw-la statio_fw-la etc._n etc._n vel_fw-la quia_fw-la ibi_fw-la sunt_fw-la cimex_n vel_fw-la vermis_n ultra_fw-la modum_fw-la foetentes_fw-la and_o again_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d dicitur_fw-la quasi_fw-la pollutum_fw-la antrum_fw-la in_o the_o same_o book_n c._n 4._o he_o say_v the_o bell-rope_n betoken_v the_o humility_n &_o life_n of_o preacher_n and_o the_o measure_n of_o man_n life_n it_o be_v great_a pity_n that_o the_o jebusite_n and_o masspriest_n be_v not_o haltre_v with_o this_o sign_n of_o humility_n and_o compass_v with_o this_o measure_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 10._o he_o say_v the_o priest_n steal_v betoken_v the_o light_a yoke_n of_o the_o lord_n stolalene_n domini_fw-la iugum_fw-la significat_fw-la lib._n 3._o c._n 11._o speak_v of_o the_o vestiment_n call_v dalmatica_fw-la he_o say_v it_o have_v wide_a sleene_n because_o charity_n ought_v to_o be_v stretch_v out_o to_o our_o
of_o christ_n and_o that_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n of_o cosmas_n and_o damianus_n and_o other_o saint_n but_o where_o such_o a_o wicked_a and_o blasphemous_a company_n as_o make_v not_o only_a saint_n but_o also_o the_o idolatrous_a masspriest_n mediator_n for_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v repute_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v visible_a before_o these_o wicked_a missal_n be_v frame_v we_o find_v not_o in_o any_o ancient_a record_n 10._o the_o romish_a church_n worship_v the_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n with_o latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n but_o such_o a_o church_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v never_o visible_a in_o the_o world_n 11._o in_o the_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o other_o ritual_a book_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n we_o find_v diverse_a prayer_n and_o confession_n to_o angel_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o other_o saint_n nay_o to_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n give_v to_o veronica_n and_o these_o prayer_n be_v both_o practise_v and_o defend_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o if_o all_o the_o pope_n lanterne-bearer_n and_o disciple_n be_v set_v to_o seek_v for_o such_o a_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n they_o shall_v but_o lose_v their_o labour_n and_o spend_v their_o wit_n in_o vain_a 12._o the_o apostle_n canon_n as_o be_v say_v do_v excommunicate_v such_o as_o do_v not_o communicate_v be_v present_a at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n we_o may_v not_o therefore_o think_v that_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n be_v visible_a in_o those_o time_n see_v they_o think_v it_o sufficient_a for_o their_o disciple_n to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o mass_n although_o they_o receive_v nothing_o 13._o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n no_o man_n ever_o hear_v that_o christian_n gape_v and_o gaze_v on_o the_o priest_n administer_a the_o lord_n supper_n or_o that_o they_o receive_v the_o one_o kind_n and_o not_o the_o other_o the_o popish_a church_n therefore_o in_o those_o time_n be_v invisible_a 14._o in_o those_o time_n also_o neither_o be_v the_o eucharist_n celebrate_v nor_o the_o scripture_n read_v in_o tongue_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o multitude_n nor_o do_v the_o people_n pray_v in_o strange_a tongue_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o missificall_a congregation_n therefore_o of_o papist_n which_o pray_v not_o know_v what_o they_o say_v and_o be_v present_a at_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n and_o celebration_n of_o sacrament_n in_o strange_a tongue_n understand_v nothing_o be_v not_o yet_o creep_v out_o of_o cacus_n his_o den_n nor_o apparent_a in_o the_o world_n 15._o the_o modern_a papist_n believe_v that_o such_o as_o in_o this_o life_n satisfy_v not_o for_o their_o sin_n commit_v after_o baptism_n be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o same_o in_o purgatory_n they_o believe_v also_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n be_v able_a to_o redeem_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n and_o to_o remit_v all_o the_o temporal_a pain_n due_a for_o sin_n but_o such_o a_o church_n as_o this_o be_v never_o to_o be_v see_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n to_o abridge_v this_o discourse_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n by_o diverse_a other_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o diverse_a other_o custom_n in_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o diverse_a other_o form_n of_o government_n all_o new_o invent_v practise_v and_o maintain_v by_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n to_o declare_v and_o prove_v that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o new_a model_n of_o a_o church_n never_o see_v nor_o know_v to_o antiquity_n but_o by_o these_o few_o particular_n the_o same_o do_v most_o clear_o appear_v already_o if_o the_o papist_n then_o seek_v to_o bring_v we_o back_o to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n then_o must_v they_o abandon_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n embrace_v the_o modern_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o sacrament_n late_o broach_v by_o the_o idle_a schoolman_n and_o confirm_v in_o the_o late_a conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o as_o it_o profess_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n publish_v by_o ancient_a counsel_n of_o the_o church_n so_o it_o renounce_v all_o heresy_n and_o nouclty_n bring_v in_o by_o papist_n and_o other_o heretic_n and_o as_o it_o renounce_v their_o false_a doctrine_n so_o it_o detest_v their_o treacherous_a practice_n chap._n lii_o that_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o motive_n to_o the_o modern_a romish_a faith_n allege_v by_o papist_n may_v as_o well_o be_v allege_v by_o heathen_a man_n and_o turk_n as_o by_o they_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o papist_n challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n title_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bring_v forth_o a_o whole_a squadron_n of_o motive_n to_o draw_v simple_a soul_n to_o like_v of_o their_o sect_n and_o to_o entangle_v they_o with_o their_o error_n bellarmine_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccles_n c._n 3._o say_v that_o the_o proper_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v these_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n antiquity_n continuance_n universality_n succession_n of_o bishop_n consent_n in_o doctrine_n miracle_n prophecy_n temporal_a felicity_n and_o such_o like_a other_o bring_v unity_n universality_n holiness_n of_o life_n and_o such_o like_a bristol_n in_o his_o motive_n stand_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o heretic_n miracle_n vision_n scripture_n tradition_n father_n martyr_n go_v out_o rising_z afterward_o succession_n immutability_n unity_n judge_n infallible_a obedient_a subject_n visibility_n and_o other_o mark_n of_o like_a nature_n but_o as_o well_o may_v the_o turk_n and_o idolatrous_a heathen_a nation_n allege_v these_o mark_n and_o motive_n as_o the_o papist_n and_o some_o of_o they_o do_v better_o agree_v to_o turk_n and_o idolatrous_a paynim_n then_o to_o idolatrous_a and_o heretical_a papist_n for_o as_o papist_n call_v themselves_o catholic_n and_o give_v the_o name_n of_o heretic_n to_o other_o so_o do_v the_o turk_n call_v themselves_o musulman_n or_o true_a believer_n and_o heathen_a idolater_n call_v themselves_o pious_a worshipper_n of_o the_o god_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o themselves_o both_o turk_n and_o paynim_n take_v christian_n to_o be_v impious_a person_n and_o heretic_n the_o turk_n call_v papist_n idolater_n and_o the_o heathen_a in_o time_n pass_v call_v christian_n atheist_n as_o for_o antiquity_n it_o agree_v far_o better_o to_o paynim_n and_o turk_n then_o to_o papist_n for_o heathen_a idolatry_n be_v long_o before_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o alcoran_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la that_o be_v publish_v by_o mahomet_n within_o 630._o year_n after_o christ_n these_o be_v commend_v and_o confirm_v by_o gregory_n the_o 9_o who_o enter_v a_o d._n 1227._o 3._o idolatry_n as_o it_o begin_v soon_o after_o the_o flood_n so_o it_o have_v ever_o since_o continue_v the_o blasphemous_a religion_n of_o turk_n har●_n continue_v ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o mahomet_n but_o popery_n never_o receive_v a_o perfect_a form_n before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o in_o most_o place_n now_o be_v decay_v 4._o the_o heathen_a idolater_n allege_v for_o themselves_o amplitude_n and_o universality_n as_o well_o as_o the_o papist_n and_o so_o may_v the_o turk_n also_o for_o in_o time_n past_o all_o nation_n worship_v idol_n fave_v the_o jew_n and_o in_o our_o time_n far_o more_o nation_n be_v delude_v by_o mahomet_n and_o his_o priest_n then_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o masspriest_n the_o pope_n doctrine_n be_v confine_v within_o a_o few_o nation_n of_o europe_n mahometisme_n posless_v the_o great_a part_n of_o asia_n and_o africa_n and_o no_o small_a part_n of_o europe_n 5._o the_o turk_n ever_o since_o mahomet_n have_v have_v a_o succession_n of_o caliphaes_n and_o priest_n and_o among_o the_o heathen_a there_o never_o want_v a_o descent_n of_o sacrifice_a idolater_n but_o the_o papist_n can_v derive_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n either_o in_o doctrine_n or_o descent_n of_o pope_n for_o neither_o be_v their_o doctrine_n apostolical_a nor_o be_v the_o pope_n the_o apostle_n successor_n beside_o that_o they_o be_v uncerteine_a both_o who_o be_v true_a pope_n and_o which_o succeed_v after_o peter_n and_o diverse_a bishop_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n 6._o the_o paynim_n with_o one_o consent_n in_o time_n pass_v worship_v idol_n neither_o do_v any_o one_o among_o they_o call_v the_o matter_n in_o question_n the_o turk_n be_v so_o resolute_a in_o religion_n that_o they_o will_v have_v no_o dispute_v against_o any_o point_n of_o their_o doctrine_n but_o popish_a schoolman_n call_v all_o point_n of_o their_o religion_n in_o question_n neither_o do_v they_o so_o well_o agree_v in_o any_o article_n but_o there_o be_v some_o that_o hold_v singular_a opinion_n the_o scotist_n differ_v from_o the_o thomist_n and_o diverse_a opinion_n be_v hold_v by_o
rest_n also_o may_v revoke_v their_o error_n see_v their_o deformity_n return_v with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n to_o god_n true_a church_n and_o so_o be_v save_v chap._n lv._o a_o brief_a recapitulation_n of_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o a_o exhortation_n both_o to_o papist_n and_o true_a christian_n thus_o we_o see_v and_o i_o pray_v god_n all_o christian_n may_v diligent_o consider_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o popish_a religion_n brief_o it_o be_v a_o collection_n of_o diverse_a corruption_n and_o error_n maintain_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n either_o contrary_a or_o above_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n this_o religion_n we_o have_v show_v to_o have_v be_v build_v upon_o weak_a uncerteine_a and_o false_a foundation_n and_o aver_v that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n law_n and_o of_o true_a faith_n and_o justification_n through_o christ_n the_o same_o also_o teach_v erroneous_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o diminish_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n further_o it_o have_v corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o bring_v in_o many_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n it_o be_v compact_v of_o diverse_a impiety_n blasphemy_n and_o idolatry_n and_o never_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v never_o teach_v by_o the_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n nor_o profess_v by_o ancient_a christian_a king_n it_o be_v not_o that_o religion_n to_o which_o the_o ancient_a britan_n and_o english_a be_v convert_v nor_o do_v it_o deserve_v to_o be_v call_v catholic_a or_o ancient_a it_o be_v find_v to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n it_o be_v a_o religion_n diverse_a from_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a martyr_n of_o christ_n jesus_n a_o religion_n devise_v by_o man_n and_o not_o derive_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n a_o religion_n who_o founder_n &_o defender_n do_v wicked_o wrest_v and_o abuse_v scriprure_n father_n and_o other_o writer_n a_o religion_n consist_v of_o heathenish_a and_o jewish_a observance_n a_o religion_n full_a of_o contradiction_n and_o contrariety_n a_o religion_n stein_v with_o many_o foolery_n and_o absurdity_n a_o religion_n keep_v christian_n in_o ignorance_n of_o true_a piety_n and_o lose_v the_o reins_n to_o all_o voluptuousness_n and_o disorder_n a_o religion_n devoid_a of_o good_a work_n and_o piety_n a_o religion_n that_o make_v a_o base_a account_n of_o god_n people_n and_o teach_v doctrine_n of_o devil_n a_o religion_n of_o who_o ground_n and_o doctrine_n the_o professor_n thereof_o have_v no_o assurance_n a_o religion_n repugnant_a to_o law_n of_o nation_n of_o kindred_n alliance_n and_o common_a civility_n a_o religion_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o dangerous_a in_o regard_n of_o their_o state_n and_o person_n a_o religion_n that_o lay_v grievous_a burden_n on_o man_n conscience_n and_o eat_v up_o christian_n through_o manifold_a exaction_n a_o religion_n without_o true_a bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o whole_o maintain_v by_o false_a allegation_n forgery_n calumniation_n lie_n fire_n and_o sword_n perjury_n and_o breach_n of_o covenant_n a_o religion_n who_o chief_a founder_n and_o maintainer_n have_v be_v common_o note_v for_o wicked_a and_o profane_a man_n a_o religion_n more_o absurd_a in_o diverse_a point_n and_o that_o oppress_v christian_n more_o greevous_o than_o mahometry_n a_o religion_n by_o who_o practice_n the_o empire_n of_o christian_n be_v decay_v &_o the_o power_n of_o the_o turk_n enlarge_v a_o religion_n profess_v by_o degenerate_v roman_n neither_o for_o faith_n nor_o life_n comparable_a to_o their_o ancestor_n and_o by_o a_o church_n that_o be_v never_o visible_a until_o of_o late_a time_n nor_o can_v show_v better_a mark_n or_o bring_v better_a motive_n to_o induce_v man_n to_o embrace_v her_o doctrine_n than_o the_o turk_n and_o paynim_n to_o conclude_v a_o religion_n who_o professor_n can_v neither_o be_v esteem_v true_a subject_n nor_o true_a christian_n nor_o justly_o pretend_v either_o assurance_n or_o hope_v of_o their_o salvation_n i_o do_v therefore_o exhort_v all_o true_a christian_n as_o they_o desire_v either_o that_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n jesus_n may_v be_v public_o receive_v or_o that_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o piety_n christian_a charity_n policy_n reason_n and_o common_a humanity_n may_v be_v suppress_v to_o beware_v of_o the_o levain_n of_o popery_n &_o to_o concur_v with_o those_o which_o both_o teach_v and_o set_v forward_o the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o which_o seek_v to_o resist_v all_o corruption_n false_a doctrine_n sect_n and_o heresy_n and_o to_o root_v up_o the_o seed_n of_o all_o treachery_n and_o rebellion_n on_o the_o other_o side_n i_o beseech_v all_o papist_n to_o cast_v away_o all_o prejudice_n and_o passion_n and_o diligent_o to_o consider_v of_o the_o premise_n that_o as_o they_o profess_v themselves_o true_a subject_n &_o well_o affect_v to_o catholic_a &_o the_o ancient_a religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n so_o they_o may_v abhor_v their_o former_a treason_n and_o rebellious_a detest_v the_o masspriest_n and_o powder-man_n their_o consort_n reject_v all_o heresy_n error_n and_o false_a doctrine_n mask_v with_o glorious_a title_n of_o universality_n and_o antiquity_n and_o set_v forth_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n teach_v a_o late_a particular_a faith_n and_o final_o endeavour_n to_o be_v gather_v together_o into_o that_o society_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n and_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n the_o god_n of_o all_o truth_n confirm_v and_o establish_v all_o true_a christian_n in_o truth_n and_o discover_v all_o treachery_n and_o error_n that_o such_o as_o now_o be_v disloial_o mind_v and_o wander_v astray_o may_v acknowledge_v their_o former_a disloialty_n and_o error_n and_o embrace_v the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n and_o that_o such_o as_o stand_v may_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n that_o so_o both_o they_o and_o we_o joint_o may_v live_v loyal_o under_o our_o prince_n and_o true_o serve_v one_o true_a and_o everliving_a god_n and_o glorify_v his_o holy_a name_n through_o christ_n our_o lord_n to_o who_o together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n three_o person_n and_o one_o god_n we_o render_v all_o praise_n and_o honour_n now_o and_o for_o ever_o a_o brief_a note_n of_o the_o content_n of_o every_o chapter_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n chap._n 1._o what_o be_v mean_v by_o popery_n or_o popish_a religion_n in_o this_o whole_a treatise_n chap._n 2._o of_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o popish_a religion_n chap._n 3._o of_o the_o wicked_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o performance_n thereof_o chap._n 4._o of_o the_o damnable_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v faith_n and_o justification_n chap._n 5._o what_o papist_n do_v mean_a speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n chap._n 6._o of_o the_o impious_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v christ_n our_o saviour_n chap._n 7._o the_o strange_a contradictory_n and_o false_a opinion_n of_o papist_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n chap._n 8._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o mixture_n of_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n chap._n 9_o a_o catalogue_n of_o diverse_a notorious_a impiety_n and_o blasphemy_n contain_v not_o only_o in_o popish_a book_n but_o also_o in_o the_o corpse_n of_o popish_a religion_n chap._n 10._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o sink_n of_o heathenish_a idolatry_n chap._n 11._o that_o popish_a religion_n never_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n chap._n 12._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v never_o teach_v either_o by_o the_o old_a prophet_n or_o by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n jesus_n chap._n 13._o that_o popery_n be_v either_o condemn_v or_o not_o know_v ●s_a by_o king_n profess_v christian_n religion_n in_o old_a time_n chap._n 14._o that_o the_o ancient_a britane_n and_o english_a be_v not_o first_o convert_v to_o popish_a religion_n chap._n 15._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v most_o false_o term_v catholic_a religion_n and_o papist_n catholic_n chap._n 16._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v not_o the_o ancient_a religion_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n chap._n 17._o that_o popery_n be_v repugnant_a to_o ancient_a counsel_n chap._n 18._o that_o popery_n be_v not_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n 19_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v never_o testify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christian_a martyr_n chap._n 20._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o mere_a humane_a device_n and_o not_o in_o any_o sort_n to_o be_v deduce_v or_o prove_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 21._o that_o popish_a religion_n in_o diverse_a point_n be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 22._o that_o the_o founder_n and_o desender_v of_o popery_n do_v most_o wicked_o abuse_v holy_a scripture_n chap._n 23._o that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o principal_a proctor_n of_o his_o cause_n be_v great_a forger_n and_o falsifier_n of_o father_n profane_a writer_n and_o of_o public_a record_n chap._n 24._o that_o popery_n stand_v much_o upon_o heathenish_a observance_n and_o custom_n chap._n 25._o that_o popery_n borrow_v also_o diverse_a fashion_n from_o the_o jew_n chap._n 26._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v full_a of_o contradiction_n and_o contrary_a opinion_n chap._n 27._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o most_o absurd_a and_o foolish_a religion_n chap._n 28._o that_o popery_n keep_v christian_n in_o blindness_n and_o ignorance_n of_o god_n and_o godliness_n chap._n 29._o that_o popish_a religion_n give_v the_o reins_n to_o licentiousness_n of_o life_n &_o lead_v christian_n the_o broad_a way_n to_o destruction_n chap._n 30._o that_o popish_a religion_n bring_v forth_o such_o bitter_a fruit_n that_o the_o professor_n thereof_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o boast_v of_o their_o work_n chap._n 31._o that_o in_o popery_n a_o base_a account_n be_v make_v of_o prince_n and_o all_o lay-man_n chap._n 32._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n chap._n 33._o that_o papist_n can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o religion_n chap._n 34._o that_o popery_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n chap._n 35._o that_o popery_n dissolve_v the_o bond_n of_o kindred_n all_o 〈◊〉_d and_o civility_n chap._n 36._o that_o popish_a religion_n either_o disannul_v or_o great_o preiudice_v the_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n chap._n 37._o that_o king_n profess_v popish_a religion_n be_v either_o no_o king_n or_o but_o half_a king_n chap._n 38._o that_o king_n live_v not_o in_o any_o security_n of_o their_o line_n where_o popery_n be_v profess_v by_o their_o subject_n chap._n 39_o that_o popish_a religion_n lay_v grievous_a burden_n on_o man_n conscience_n chap._n 40._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v very_o grievous_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o masspriest_n manfolde_v tax_n and_o exaction_n chap._n 41._o that_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v no_o true_a bishop_n nor_o priest_n chap._n 42._o that_o popery_n can_v be_v maintain_v without_o forgery_n and_o falsehood_n chap._n 43._o that_o popery_n can_v be_v well_o uphold_v without_o calummation_n and_o lie_n chap._n 44._o that_o the_o cause_n of_o popery_n be_v not_o maintain_v without_o fire_n and_o sword_n chap._n 45._o that_o the_o practice_n and_o treaty_n of_o pope_n and_o their_o complice_n with_o christian_n be_v not_o to_o be_v trust_v chap._n 46._o that_o the_o chief_a founder_n and_o maintainer_n of_o popery_n have_v be_v common_o note_v for_o wicked_a and_o profane_a man_n chap._n 47._o that_o popery_n in_o many_o point_n be_v more_o absurd_a and_o abominable_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o mahomet_n chap._n 48._o that_o christian_n be_v less_o oppress_v under_o the_o turk_n then_o under_o the_o pope_n chap._n 49._o that_o the_o ambition_n covetousness_n contention_n &_o practice_n of_o pope_n be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o christian_a empire_n and_o a_o great_a occasion_n of_o the_o good_a success_n of_o the_o turk_n chap._n 50._o that_o the_o modern_n church_n of_o rome_n be_v much_o degenerate_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_n chap._n 51._o that_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v be_v invisible_a in_o old_a time_n chap._n 52._o that_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o motive_n to_o the_o modern_a romish_a faith_n allege_v by_o papist_n may_v as_o well_o be_v alle_fw-mi dge_v by_o turk_n and_o infidel_n chap._n 53._o that_o true_a papist_n can_v be_v true_a nor_o loyal_a subject_n chap._n 54._o that_o such_o papist_n as_o positive_o hold_v all_o the_o heretical_a and_o false_a doctrine_n of_o the_o mederne_a church_n of_o rome_n can_v possible_o be_v save_v chap._n 55._o a_o brief_a recapitulation_n of_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o be_v exhortation_n both_o to_o papist_n and_o true_a christian_n
foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n they_o do_v make_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o write_v equal_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o upon_o they_o nay_o upon_o the_o decretales_fw-la of_o pope_n and_o practice_v of_o masseprieste_n do_v build_v their_o faith_n all_o antiquity_n esteem_v holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o canon_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o therefore_o call_v they_o canonical_a but_o the_o romanist_n esteem_v they_o to_o be_v a_o unperfect_a canon_n without_o their_o tradition_n and_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_o determination_n bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 4._o say_v they_o be_v neither_o necessary_a nor_o sufficient_a without_o tradition_n the_o father_n never_o account_v the_o book_n of_o tobiah_n judith_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la wisdom_n and_o the_o maccabee_n equal_a to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n extant_a original_o in_o hebrew_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o hierome_n in_o prologo_fw-la galeato_fw-la of_o athanasius_n in_o synopsi_fw-la of_o nazianzen_n in_o carm_n of_o epiphanius_n and_o diverse_a other_o old_a and_o new_a writer_n the_o papist_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o trent_n decree_v they_o to_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o rest_n the_o ancient_a catholic_n ever_o esteem_v the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o greek_a of_o the_o new_a to_o be_v more_o authentical_a than_o any_o translation_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n have_v make_v the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n authentical_a and_o do_v not_o give_v that_o honour_n to_o the_o original_a book_n of_o the_o bible_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n we_o say_v receive_v their_o force_n from_o the_o author_n of_o they_o and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n and_o by_o argument_n from_o scripture_n law_n and_o reason_n they_o say_v that_o scripture_n receive_v force_n and_o authority_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o from_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o from_o the_o pope_n papist_n be_v neither_o willing_a that_o scripture_n be_v turn_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n nor_o will_v permit_v they_o to_o be_v read_v of_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n without_o licence_n or_o public_o read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n final_o they_o say_v they_o be_v obscure_a and_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o speak_v what_o they_o can_v in_o their_o disgrace_n second_o they_o teach_v erroneous_o concern_v christ_n natural_a body_n and_o concern_v his_o office_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o believe_v to_o be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n on_o every_o altar_n at_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o time_n they_o also_o hold_v that_o his_o body_n be_v real_o under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n give_v he_o a_o body_n neither_o visible_a nor_o palpable_a nor_o in_o any_o sort_n like_a to_o we_o they_o teach_v further_o that_o his_o body_n be_v in_o diverse_a place_n where_o it_o fill_v not_o the_o place_n and_o that_o his_o one_o body_n have_v relation_n to_o diverse_a place_n they_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a before_o christ_n come_n be_v in_o hell_n or_o at_o least_o in_o limbo_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o hell_n and_o be_v thence_o deliver_v by_o christ_n go_v to_o hell_n as_o if_o his_o cross_n have_v wrought_v nothing_o for_o they_o they_o teach_v that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v omniscient_a and_o per_fw-la consequent_a omnipotent_a and_o that_o he_o be_v vir_fw-la perfectus_fw-la that_o be_v a_o perfect_a or_o grow_v man_n from_o the_o first_o instant_n of_o his_o conception_n his_o office_n of_o mediation_n they_o give_v to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o angel_n and_o to_o saint_n they_o make_v also_o saint_n our_o redeemer_n teach_v that_o by_o their_o merit_n christian_n obtain_v their_o desire_n and_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o purgatory_n to_o masspriest_n they_o give_v priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o say_v that_o they_o offer_v up_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n real_o for_o quick_a and_o dead_a final_o they_o make_v the_o pope_n head_n spouse_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v they_o teach_v more_o catholikely_a of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n then_o of_o his_o natural_a body_n for_o they_o subject_v the_o same_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o exclude_v all_o from_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n the_o true_a member_n thereof_o they_o persecute_v and_o make_v heretic_n and_o reprobate_n and_o such_o as_o live_v without_o order_n or_o law_n profess_v their_o religion_n outward_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o church_n say_v they_o be_v always_o so_o conspicuous_a and_o visible_a that_o every_o one_o may_v see_v it_o and_o discern_v it_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v true_a doctrine_n and_o the_o sincere_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n they_o deny_v assign_v most_o common_a and_o uncerteine_a mark_n as_o unity_n universality_n antiquity_n succession_n and_o such_o like_a the_o pope_n they_o make_v a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n and_o judge_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n they_o give_v he_o authority_n to_o make_v law_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o power_n to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n they_o make_v he_o more_o sovereign_a than_o a_o general_a council_n and_o say_v that_o his_o power_n in_o give_v indulgence_n reach_v into_o purgatory_n they_o say_v he_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o depose_v king_n and_o to_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n to_o other_o betwixt_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o roman_a church_n they_o make_v no_o difference_n equal_v a_o part_n to_o the_o whole_a they_o say_v also_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v neither_o err_v nor_o fail_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n consist_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n but_o they_o place_v the_o same_o in_o certain_a external_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o in_o mere_a humane_a invention_n and_o device_n nay_o for_o god_n they_o worship_v creature_n not_o only_o give_v divine_a honour_n to_o the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o to_o crucifix_n and_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n make_v of_o wood_n stone_n and_o colour_n they_o do_v also_o adore_v not_o only_a saint_n but_o rot_a bone_n and_o rag_n they_o know_v not_o of_o who_o to_o saint_n they_o pray_v they_o make_v vow_n they_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o saint_n they_o erect_v church_n and_o altar_n to_o their_o image_n they_o burn_v incense_n and_o present_v diverse_a oblation_n and_o final_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n have_v devise_v particular_a mass_n and_o office_n transform_v the_o psalm_n and_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o angel_n and_o saint_n their_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n be_v most_o exorbitant_a for_o they_o do_v not_o only_o add_v unto_o water_n in_o baptism_n salt_n spittle_n oil_n and_o diverse_a other_o ceremony_n partly_o idle_a partly_o superstitious_a but_o also_o unto_o the_o two_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n they_o equal_a confirmation_n matrimony_n penance_n order_n and_o extreme_a unction_n make_v they_o sacrament_n as_o well_o as_o baptism_n or_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o confirmation_n they_o have_v devise_v both_o a_o new_a sign_n and_o new_a word_n in_o extreme_a unction_n they_o have_v devise_v new_a form_n in_o the_o order_n of_o priest_n they_o say_v accipe_fw-la potestatem_fw-la offerendi_fw-la sacrisicium_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la pro_fw-la vivis_fw-la &_o mortuis_fw-la that_o be_v receive_v power_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a in_o penance_n they_o urge_v a_o necessity_n of_o confession_n strange_a form_n of_o whip_v and_o uncerteine_a hope_n and_o new_a device_n of_o satisfaction_n from_o matrimony_n they_o exclude_v priest_n monk_n and_o friar_n and_o make_v it_o a_o sacrament_n albeit_o they_o know_v neither_o certain_a sign_n nor_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o it_o but_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n they_o have_v quite_o abolish_v for_o that_o which_o christ_n ordain_v to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o communicant_n that_o the_o masse-priest_n do_v offer_v for_o quick_a &_o dead_a and_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n speak_v in_o the_o institution_n our_o saviour_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n institute_v his_o last_o supper_n these_o neither_o leave_n bread_n nor_o wine_n but_o make_v christian_n eater_n of_o man_n flesh_n and_o drinker_n of_o man_n blood_n like_o the_o cannibal_n &_o cyclopes_n christ_n ordain_v this_o sacrament_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n these_o make_v of_o the_o same_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o take_v from_o christian_n abrogate_a as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v the_o new_a testament_n establish_v in_o christ_n blood_n and_o
we_o justice_n wisdom_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n and_o that_o abraham_n believe_v it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n the_o prophet_n isaias_n cap._n 53._o show_v that_o by_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v 9_o they_o say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n and_o by_o the_o work_v there_o of_o but_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 3._o say_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n before_o god_n and_o rom._n 4._o he_o show_v that_o abraham_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n do_v it_o not_o then_o manifest_o appear_v that_o these_o false_a apostle_n of_o antichrist_n teach_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n or_o partaker_n of_o his_o faith_n 10_o thomas_n aquinas_n 2.2_o q._n 4._o art_n 3._o teach_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o confess_v their_o faith_n at_o all_o time_n and_o this_o his_o follower_n diligent_o practice_v that_o by_o their_o wicked_a teacher_n be_v teach_v to_o aequivocate_v and_o dissemble_v their_o faith_n and_o profession_n but_o true_a christian_n be_v always_o bold_o to_o profess_v their_o faith_n and_o to_o yield_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o for_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n who_o we_o be_v rather_o to_o credit_v than_o these_o false_a apostle_n 11_o for_o a_o lay_v man_n to_o dispute_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n they_o count_v it_o mortal_a sin_n especial_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v forbid_v the_o same_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n as_o navarrus_n teach_v enchirid_a c._n 11._o but_o this_o show_v that_o papist_n do_v rather_o seek_v to_o suppress_v the_o faith_n then_o to_o teach_v matter_n of_o faith_n the_o same_o also_o appear_v for_o that_o they_o commend_v ignorance_n and_o thomas_n aquinas_n 2.2_o q._n 2._o art_n 6._o say_v that_o all_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o have_v explicit_a faith_n linwood_n in_o his_o gloss_n upon_o the_o constitution_n beginning_n ignorantia_fw-la de_fw-la summa_fw-la trinit_fw-la holdeth_z that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o lay_v man_n and_o simple_a people_n to_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n implicit_o or_o to_o believe_v as_o the_o catholic_a church_n believe_v and_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o hosius_n commend_v in_o the_o collier_n but_o it_o show_v that_o our_o adversary_n seek_v to_o entertain_v the_o people_n in_o ignorance_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n while_o the_o masspriest_n sport_n and_o entertain_v themselves_o with_o all_o delight_n and_o live_v idle_o reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o poor_a man_n labour_n 12_o thomas_n aquinas_n p._n 3._o q._n 7._o art_n 3._o deni_v that_o christ_n have_v faith_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v make_v christ_n the_o author_n of_o our_o faith_n a_o pagan_a and_o a_o infidel_n further_o the_o same_o overthrow_v the_o popish_a definition_n of_o faith_n for_o either_o christ_n do_v not_o firm_o believe_v god_n word_n or_o else_o he_o have_v faith_n now_o to_o say_v that_o be_v plain_a blasphemy_n neither_o be_v that_o defence_n material_a that_o christ_n know_v all_o thing_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n of_o two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n for_o that_o do_v not_o overthrow_v his_o humane_a nature_n nor_o hinder_v he_o for_o have_v faith_n without_o all_o imperfection_n final_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n only_o be_v to_o order_n and_o to_o publish_v the_o creed_n for_o that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n 2._o 2._o q._n 1._o art_n 10._o and_o the_o rest_n no_o question_n believe_v it_o but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v not_o only_o the_o nicene_n and_o constantinopolitan_a confession_n but_o also_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o faith_n of_o christ_n for_o whatsoever_o face_n our_o adversary_n do_v set_v on_o matter_n they_o shall_v never_o show_v that_o these_o ancient_a creed_n do_v either_o depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o be_v by_o he_o order_v publish_v or_o confirm_v nay_o many_o pope_n we_o read_v of_o which_o for_o any_o thing_n we_o can_v understand_v do_v not_o believe_v the_o apostle_n creed_n upon_o this_o weak_a foundation_n of_o infidel_n pope_n the_o miserable_a papist_n do_v build_v their_o wind-shaken_a faith_n we_o do_v not_o therefore_o marvel_v if_o they_o rely_v more_o upon_o work_n than_o this_o faith_n and_o if_o they_o trust_v rather_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o good_a work_n than_o the_o pope_n erroneous_a faith_n but_o if_o they_o will_v consider_v what_o true_a faith_n be_v and_o how_o the_o same_o apply_v christ_n unto_o we_o and_o unit_v we_o unto_o he_o than_o will_v they_o abandon_v the_o error_n of_o popery_n of_o which_o we_o have_v give_v a_o taste_n in_o this_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n chap._n v._o what_o papist_n do_v mean_a by_o the_o gospel_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o christian_n be_v the_o gladsome_a declaration_n of_o god_n favour_n offer_v to_o we_o through_o christ_n jesus_n and_o therefore_o the_o angel_n luc._n 2._o speak_v of_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n declare_v that_o he_o bring_v they_o tiding_n of_o great_a joy_n that_o shall_v be_v to_o all_o people_n but_o the_o papist_n by_o their_o new_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n do_v so_o confound_v the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n as_o if_o they_o seek_v to_o deprive_v christian_n of_o this_o joy_n and_o mean_v to_o alter_v the_o title_n of_o christ_n most_o joyful_a gospel_n for_o first_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v a_o saviour_n or_o a_o redeemer_n but_o a_o lawgiver_n that_o be_v to_o propound_v a_o new_a law_n wherewith_o christian_n be_v to_o be_v new_o charge_v they_o call_v the_o gospel_n the_o new_a law_n but_o neither_o be_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n contain_v in_o the_o two_o table_n abolish_v nor_o be_v it_o christ_n intention_n to_o surcharge_n his_o people_n with_o new_a law_n and_o new_a bond_n but_o to_o free_v they_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o to_o redeem_v they_o as_o for_o the_o order_n concern_v sacrament_n we_o may_v not_o repute_v they_o to_o be_v proper_o law_n but_o mean_n and_o direction_n for_o the_o right_n apply_v of_o god_n grace_n unto_o christian_n further_o the_o new_a law_n that_o god_n speak_v of_o be_v write_v in_o man_n heart_n as_o we_o read_v hierem._n 31._o and_o heb._n 8._o but_o the_o law_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o papist_n speak_v of_o be_v partly_o write_v in_o scripture_n and_o partly_o in_o decretales_fw-la the_o papist_n therefore_o make_v christ_n a_o new_a lawgiver_n do_v overthrow_v his_o covenant_n of_o grace_n second_o this_o new_a law_n or_o testament_n as_o they_o say_v be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n shed_v into_o our_o heart_n for_o so_o do_v bellarmine_n teach_v lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 3._o but_o grant_v this_o and_o then_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v not_o include_v remission_n of_o sin_n for_o love_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n another_o but_o that_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v include_v remission_n of_o sin_n first_o our_o saviour_n do_v signify_v where_o he_o call_v the_o cup_n of_o thanksgiving_n the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o chrysostome_n in_o 2._o cor._n 3._o and_o theodoret_n oecumenius_n and_o theophylact_n upon_o the_o same_o place_n direct_o affirm_v three_o thomas_n aquinas_n 1.2_o q._n 107._o art_n 4._o say_v that_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o new_a law_n or_o of_o the_o gospel_n as_o touch_v the_o inward_a work_n of_o virtue_n be_v more_o grievous_a than_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la opera_fw-la virtutum_fw-la say_v he_o in_o actibus_fw-la interioribus_fw-la etc._n etc._n praeceptanovae_fw-la legis_fw-la sunt_fw-la graviora_fw-la this_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n math_n 11._o my_o yoke_n say_v he_o be_v easy_a and_o my_o burden_n light_n furthermore_o the_o same_o make_v the_o gospel_n not_o to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a liberty_n and_o redemption_n but_o of_o bondage_n and_o greevance_n four_o the_o censurer_n of_o collein_n fol._n 204._o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o with_o they_o in_o effect_n do_v bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 3._o consent_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v nothing_o but_o charity_n shed_v into_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o this_o confound_v the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o charity_n be_v require_v by_o the_o law_n further_o the_o same_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o law_n say_v
si_fw-la huius_fw-la quae_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la docebatur_fw-la fidei_fw-la particeps_fw-la esset_fw-la so_o likewise_o the_o pope_n grant_v indulgence_n to_o all_o those_o that_o fight_n for_o their_o sect_n whatsoever_o outrage_n and_o villainy_n they_o have_v commit_v neither_o do_v priest_n refuse_v absolution_n to_o any_o of_o their_o sect_n if_o they_o be_v rule_v by_o they_o bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o the_o eccles_n c._n 2._o require_v neither_o faith_n nor_o virtue_n in_o a_o christian_a if_o he_o profess_v outward_o the_o romish_a faith_n 43._o the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 4._o do_v condemn_v they_o as_o heretic_n that_o forbid_v man_n to_o marry_v &_o entoin_v they_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n recte_fw-la posuit_fw-la prohibentium_fw-la nubere_fw-la say_v theodoret_n in_o 1._o tim._n 4._o neque_fw-la enim_fw-la caelibatum_fw-la aut_fw-la continentiam_fw-la vituperat_fw-la sed_fw-la eos_fw-la accusat_fw-la qui_fw-la lege_fw-la lata_fw-la ea_fw-la sequi_fw-la compellunt_fw-la but_o papist_n by_o law_n forbid_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o of_o such_o as_o have_v vow_v single_a life_n and_o have_v make_v diverse_a law_n against_o eat_a flesh_n burn_v all_o that_o teach_v otherwise_o 44._o the_o heretic_n call_v anomi_n be_v condemn_v for_o corrupt_v the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o i_o have_v show_v that_o the_o papist_n by_o their_o irregular_a doctrine_n and_o tradition_n have_v not_o only_o corrupt_v it_o but_o also_o disannul_v it_o for_o the_o most_o part_n 45._o irenaeus_n advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 2._o range_v they_o among_o heretic_n that_o accuse_v scripture_n as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o right_a or_o not_o of_o authority_n or_o diverse_o to_o be_v understand_v or_o not_o sufficient_a without_o tradition_n quasi_fw-la non_fw-la rectè_fw-la habeant_fw-la neque_fw-la sint_fw-la ex_fw-la authoritate_fw-la &_o quia_fw-la variè_fw-la sunt_fw-la dictae_fw-la &_o quia_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la ex_fw-la his_fw-la inveniri_fw-la veritas_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la nesciant_fw-la traditionem_fw-la all_o which_o quality_n be_v incident_a to_o the_o papist_n for_o they_o complain_v of_o their_o flexibility_n and_o insufficiency_n and_o without_o the_o church_n determination_n make_v they_o to_o we_o of_o no_o authority_n tertullian_n lib._n the_o praescrip_n advers_a haeret_fw-la say_v some_o heretic_n by_o their_o hand_n other_o by_o exposition_n pervert_v scripture_n alius_fw-la say_v he_o mancel_v scripturas_fw-la alius_fw-la sensu_fw-la expositiones_fw-la interuertit_fw-la the_o papist_n excel_v in_o both_o for_o by_o their_o addition_n and_o false_a version_n they_o have_v falsify_v scripture_n and_o their_o commentary_n in_o case_n controverse_v be_v nothing_o but_o perversion_n and_o false_a exposition_n of_o scripture_n turrian_n write_v against_o that_o worthy_a servant_n of_o god_n master_n sadeel_n do_v call_v the_o scripture_n delphicum_fw-la gladium_fw-la or_o a_o instrument_n serve_v to_o diverse_a purpose_n other_o call_v they_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n or_o a_o shipman_n hose_n some_o esteem_v they_o a_o matter_n of_o strife_n 46._o isidore_n lib._n 8._o orig_n c._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la do_v declare_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n that_o do_v otherwise_o understand_v the_o scripture_n than_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n require_v quicunque_fw-la aliter_fw-la scripturam_fw-la sacram_fw-la intelligit_fw-la say_v he_o quàm_fw-la sensus_fw-la spiritus_fw-la san●●i_fw-la flagitat_fw-la licet_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la recesserit_fw-la tamen_fw-la haereticus_fw-la potest_fw-la appellari_fw-la but_o this_o be_v a_o common_a fault_n of_o papist_n throughout_o all_o their_o book_n of_o controversy_n and_o commentary_n 47._o as_o the_o herodian_o do_v give_v the_o title_n and_o honour_n of_o christ_n to_o herode_fw-la and_o be_v therefore_o repute_v heretic_n by_o damascene_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la so_o the_o papist_n do_v give_v christ_n title_n and_o honour_n to_o the_o pope_n call_v he_o the_o head_n and_o foundation_n and_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o christ_n why_o then_o shall_v they_o not_o be_v call_v papal_a heretic_n aswell_o as_o the_o other_o herodian_a heretic_n 48._o damascene_fw-la account_v they_o heretic_n that_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christian_n and_o mislike_v their_o study_n of_o scripture_n gnosimachi_n say_v he_o omni_fw-la christianorum_fw-la cognitioni_fw-la ac_fw-la scientiae_fw-la ita_fw-la adversantur_fw-la ut_fw-la vanum_fw-la &_o minus_fw-la necessarium_fw-la laborem_fw-la esse_fw-la dicant_fw-la corum_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o diumis_fw-la scripture_n aliquam_fw-la exquirunt_fw-la scientiam_fw-la the_o papist_n likewise_o condemn_v lay-man_n that_o read_v &_o study_v scripture_n especial_o in_o vulgar_a tong_n and_o commend_v ignorance_n they_o do_v also_o speak_v high_a commendation_n of_o a_o collier_n faith_n and_o think_v it_o sufficient_a without_o more_o ado_n that_o they_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n do_v 49._o the_o ethnophromans_n be_v likewise_o put_v in_o the_o role_n of_o heretic_n for_o that_o they_o bring_v in_o diverse_a heathenish_a dustome_n into_o the_o church_n as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o damascene_fw-la de_fw-la haeresibus_fw-la if_o then_o the_o papist_n have_v their_o right_n they_o be_v there_o also_o for_o their_o carnenal_n candle_n bear_v holy_a water_n cense_v of_o image_n and_o infinite_a such_o trick_n to_o be_v calendr_v among_o heretic_n 50._o the_o dislike_n of_o second_o marriage_n express_v c._n de_o his_o 31._o q._n 1._o and_o for_o that_o they_o debar_v such_o from_o priesthood_n be_v borrow_v from_o the_o montanist_n 51._o in_o the_o roman_a cathechisme_n part_n 1._o in_o exposit_n 3._o art_n fid_fw-we they_o teach_v that_o our_o saviour_n pass_v out_o of_o his_o mother_n womb_n as_o the_o ray_n of_o the_o sun_n do_v pierce_v through_o the_o substance_n of_o glass_n quomodo_fw-la solis_fw-la radij_fw-la concretam_fw-la vitri_fw-la substantiam_fw-la penetrant_fw-la but_o this_o heresy_n do_v quite_o overthrow_v the_o article_n of_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o saviour_n 52._o the_o conventicle_n of_o 6._o of_o sect_n 6._o trent_n teach_v we_o always_o in_o this_o life_n to_o doubt_v of_o god_n favour_n towards_o we_o and_o of_o our_o own_o salvation_n but_o this_o heresy_n show_v that_o the_o papist_n teach_v infidelity_n rather_o than_o true_a faith_n 53._o final_o if_o heresy_n be_v a_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o faith_n as_o ocham_n say_v or_o to_o scripture_n as_o robert_n grosth_v affirm_v apud_fw-la matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3._o or_o to_o conclusion_n deduce_v out_o of_o scripture_n as_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n signify_v apud_fw-la aen._n sylu._n the_o gest_n council_n basil_n lib._n 1._o then_o be_v all_o the_o opinion_n of_o papist_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o heresy_n as_o be_v repugnant_a to_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o the_o faith_n deduce_v out_o of_o they_o and_o these_o heresy_n albeit_o ancient_o condemn_v be_v yet_o general_o hold_v by_o the_o papist_n but_o if_o i_o shall_v rehearse_v the_o particular_a heresy_n of_o pope_n and_o their_o chief_a doctor_n there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o the_o rehearsal_n gelasius_n the_o pope_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o picenum_n say_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o man_n be_v depraty_v by_o original_a sin_n which_o import_v rather_o the_o destruction_n of_o nature_n than_o the_o loss_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o his_o opinion_n the_o master_n of_o sentence_n lib._n 2._o do_v 31._o teach_v that_o the_o flesh_n only_o and_o not_o the_o soul_n be_v make_v unclean_a by_o original_a sin_n likewise_o lib._n 1_o do_v 24._o he_o say_v that_o name_n of_o number_n put_v nothing_o in_o the_o trinity_n which_o overthrow_v the_o real_a distinction_n of_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n again_o lib._n 1_o do_v 17._o he_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v nothing_o but_o charity_n whereby_o we_o love_v god_n his_o addendum_fw-la say_v he_o quòd_fw-la ipse_fw-la idem_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_fw-la est_fw-la amor_fw-la sive_fw-la charitas_fw-la qua_fw-la nos_fw-la diligimus_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o proximum_fw-la which_o overthrow_v the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n john_n the_o 22._o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o michael_n cesenas_n place_v after_o the_o work_n of_o occam_n deny_v the_o personal_a distinction_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o deny_v also_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v see_v god_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o abbot_n joachim_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o chap._n damnamus_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trin_n &_o sid_n cath_z say_v that_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o non_fw-la unitate_fw-la essentiae_fw-la sed_fw-la collectionis_fw-la tantum_fw-la not_o by_o unity_n of_o essence_n but_o by_o unity_n of_o collection_n as_o diverse_a citizen_n make_v one_o people_n which_o overthrow_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n albert_n upon_o the_o first_o book_n of_o sentence_n do_v 9_o and_o thomas_n aquinas_n in_o scripto_fw-la confess_v that_o speak_v of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o
therefore_o think_v that_o either_o the_o christian_n there_o make_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o else_o worship_v and_o burn_v incense_n to_o they_o and_o very_o absurd_a it_o be_v if_o any_o man_n shall_v suppose_v that_o the_o popish_a invocation_n and_o worship_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o their_o practice_n philo_z in_o legate_n ad_fw-la caium_fw-la say_v the_o jew_n think_v it_o impious_a either_o in_o picture_n or_o grave_v work_n to_o represent_v god_n that_o be_v invisible_a invisibilem_fw-la deum_fw-la pingere_fw-la aut_fw-la singere_fw-la nefas_fw-la duxerunt_fw-la maiores_fw-la nostri_fw-la say_v he_o neither_o if_o we_o run_v through_o the_o bible_n shall_v we_o find_v any_o precedent_n of_o the_o popish_a invocation_n and_o worship_n of_o saint_n use_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n final_o if_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v know_v or_o suspect_v that_o s._n peter_n or_o his_o successor_n have_v be_v design_v christ_n vicar_n general_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n and_o appoint_v to_o give_v law_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n then_o will_v they_o never_o have_v suffer_v he_o to_o depart_v from_o jerusalem_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n therefore_o must_v seek_v some_o other_o place_n than_o jerusalem_n whence_o to_o derive_v their_o doctrine_n law_n ceremony_n and_o form_n of_o government_n or_o else_o they_o will_v never_o find_v out_o the_o true_a descent_n of_o their_o church_n in_o babylon_n certes_o they_o shall_v rather_o find_v out_o these_o matter_n than_o in_o jerusalem_n chap._n xii_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v never_o teach_v either_o by_o the_o old_a prophet_n or_o by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n jesus_n faithful_a christian_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o ephes_n 2._o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n and_o this_o the_o papist_n must_v needs_o confess_v although_o much_o to_o their_o grief_n unless_o they_o will_v deny_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o popery_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o upon_o his_o decretales_fw-la and_o determination_n and_o support_v stout_o by_o his_o purple_a cardinal_n and_o the_o merchant_n of_o babylon_n the_o masspriest_n and_o neither_o upon_o christ_n nor_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n the_o apostle_n 2._o tim._n 3._o show_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o salvation_n and_o be_v give_v of_o god_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v absolute_a and_o make_v perfect_a unto_o all_o good_a work_n but_o papist_n teach_v that_o they_o be_v a_o imperfect_a rule_n and_o without_o tradition_n unsufficient_a for_o that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o all_o his_o consort_n they_o do_v also_o rail_v against_o holy_a scripture_n and_o call_v they_o a_o dead_a and_o kill_a letter_n the_o holy_a prophet_n bring_v no_o message_n to_o those_o nation_n to_o who_o they_o be_v send_v but_o they_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n that_o send_v they_o say_v thus_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v it_o but_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n confirm_v their_o doctrine_n by_o their_o own_o pleasure_n for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o albeit_o sometime_o the_o same_o allege_v scripture_n yet_o their_o best_a and_o common_a argument_n be_v placet_fw-la nobis_fw-la their_o school_n doctor_n also_o for_o matter_n controverse_v do_v more_o common_o allege_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la than_o holy_a scripture_n rom._n 10._o we_o read_v that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o camsius_fw-la in_o his_o catechism_n the_o sid_n &_o symb_n signify_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v god_n word_n reveal_v unless_o the_o same_o be_v also_o propound_v by_o the_o church_n and_o by_o the_o church_n he_o understand_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n peter_n and_o john_n act._n 4._o show_n that_o god_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v obey_v then_o man_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v excommunicate_v all_o that_o harken_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n whatsoever_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o contrary_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_n 4._o teach_v we_o that_o we_o be_v to_o embrace_v tradition_n not_o write_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o tradition_n and_o holy_a scripture_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o know_v either_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o prophet_n nay_o moses_n do_v teach_v quite_o contrary_a you_o shall_v put_v nothing_o to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v you_o nor_o shall_v you_o take_v aught_o therefrom_o say_v he_o deut._n 4._o and_o s._n paul_n galat._n 1._o if_o any_o man_n preach_v unto_o you_o otherwise_o than_o that_o you_o have_v receive_v say_v he_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v this_o curse_n therefore_o do_v fall_v on_o the_o friar_n and_o mass_n priest_n that_o preach_v the_o pope_n doctrine_n which_o they_o shall_v never_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n though_o they_o read_v until_o their_o eye_n drop_v out_o of_o their_o head_n the_o religion_n of_o papist_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n consist_v in_o prayer_n to_o saint_n mass_n and_o office_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o angel_n the_o virgin_n mary_n martyr_n confessor_n and_o the_o pope_n canonize_a creature_n in_o erect_v of_o cross_n and_o crucifix_n and_o other_o image_n in_o burn_a incense_n before_o image_n nay_o they_o give_v divine_a honour_n to_o creature_n which_o themselves_n can_v deny_v to_o be_v idolatrous_a cum_fw-la christus_fw-la adoretur_fw-la adoratione_n latriae_fw-la consequens_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la cius_fw-la imago_fw-la sit_fw-la adoratione_n latriae_fw-la adoranda_fw-la see_v christ_n say_v thomas_n aquinas_n p._n 3._o q._n 25._o art_n 3._o be_v worship_v with_o latria_fw-la or_o honour_n proper_o belong_v to_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o his_o image_n be_v also_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o the_o adoration_n of_o latria_fw-la or_o divine_a worship_n either_o therefore_o must_v our_o adversary_n show_n that_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n offer_v sacrifice_n in_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o make_v prayer_n unto_o they_o and_o set_v up_o image_n to_o be_v worship_v in_o temple_n and_o use_v to_o burn_v incense_n unto_o they_o and_o to_o honour_v they_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o papist_n or_o else_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o their_o religion_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n how_o hard_o this_o proof_n will_v be_v it_o may_v appear_v in_o this_o that_o god_n law_n deut._n 4._o and_o exod._n 20._o direct_o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o grave_a image_n after_o the_o likeness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n and_o christ_n ordain_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v receive_v in_o commemoration_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n and_o never_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v the_o offering_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n or_o other_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n the_o masspriest_n that_o plot_v the_o ruin_n of_o religion_n at_o trent_n sess_v 6._o ascribe_v man_n justification_n to_o his_o work_n and_o exclude_v justification_n both_o by_o christ_n justice_n and_o by_o faith_n apprehend_v christ_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o both_o the_o prophet_n abacuc_n chap._n 2._o and_o s._n paul_n rom._n 1._o affirm_v that_o the_o just_a do_v live_v by_o faith_n the_o apostle_n also_o 1._o cor._n 1._o say_v that_o our_o saour_n christ_n be_v make_v wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n unto_o us._n which_o if_o it_o be_v wrought_v by_o our_o work_n than_o shall_v we_o have_v be_v make_v wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n unto_o ourselves_o nay_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 3._o say_v if_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n that_o then_o he_o have_v wherein_o to_o rejoice_v but_o not_o with_o god_n popish_a religion_n consist_v most_o in_o external_a ceremony_n as_o for_o example_n in_o salt_n holy_a water_n holy_a candle_n incense_n ring_v of_o sacring_a bell_n adore_v cross_n and_o image_n grease_v of_o sick_a man_n and_o masspriest_n shave_v of_o crown_n vow_n monkish_a rule_n and_o such_o like_a toy_n but_o these_o foolery_n be_v never_o know_v either_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o prophet_n nay_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 15._o teach_v that_o in_o vain_a they_o seek_v to_o worship_n god_n that_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o precept_n of_o man_n he_o show_v also_o john_n 4._o that_o true_a worshipper_n worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n and_o the_o apostle_n coloss_n 2._o condemn_v such_o as_o put_v religion_n in_o touch_v fast_v and_o such_o like_a vain_a ceremony_n the_o masspriest_n call_v the_o pope_n the_o spouse_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o derive_v his_o authority_n from_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o
apostle_n he_o shall_v declare_v himself_o to_o want_v both_o head_n and_o brain_n for_o in_o the_o canticle_n c._n 2._o and_o ephes_n 5._o the_o title_n of_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n be_v declare_v to_o belong_v to_o christ_n and_o he_o only_o the_o scripture_n declare_v to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n gregory_n lib._n 4._o ep_n 38._o ad_fw-la joan._n constantinopol_n show_v that_o neither_o paul_n nor_o andrew_n nor_o john_n nor_o peter_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n under_o one_o head_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n consist_v of_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n and_o such_o be_v peter_n command_v to_o feed_v god_n say_v by_o his_o prophet_n isay_n c._n 11._o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o hurt_v nor_o kill_v in_o all_o his_o holy_a mountain_n and_o that_o the_o wolf_n shall_v dwell_v with_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o pard_n he_o with_o the_o kid_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v full_a of_o blood_n and_o whole_o uphold_v by_o cruelty_n in_o france_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n have_v cause_v above_o two_o hundred_o thousand_o person_n to_o be_v murder_v for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o fire_n and_o butcher_n axe_n of_o their_o executioner_n have_v consume_v also_o infinite_a christian_n in_o italy_n spain_n england_n scotland_n germany_n and_o the_o low_a country_n very_o ignorant_a therefore_o he_o be_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o suppose_v that_o the_o massacre_a romish_a church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n the_o prophet_n daniel_n do_v prophecy_n how_o a_o certain_a king_n shall_v arise_v that_o shall_v speak_v word_n of_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o most_o high_a and_o consume_v his_o saint_n and_o that_o shall_v think_v that_o he_o may_v change_v time_n and_o law_n the_o apostle_n also_o 2._o thess_n 2._o show_v that_o there_o shall_v come_v a_o depart_a and_o that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v disclose_v and_o exalt_v himself_o against_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n s._n john_n also_o in_o his_o apocalypse_n show_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v rise_v after_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o give_v life_n to_o that_o state_n and_o that_o the_o great_a whore_n shall_v sit_v upon_o the_o seven_o hill_n and_o have_v her_o garment_n die_v red_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o saint_n but_o this_o argue_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v not_o christian_a religion_n ground_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n but_o rather_o antichristian_a heresy_n found_v upon_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_o schoolmen_n fond_a and_o foolish_a invention_n final_o it_o be_v not_o only_o desperate_a ignorance_n but_o also_o mere_a madness_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o ground_n doctrine_n heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n which_o before_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o be_v derive_v out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n will_v kellison_n the_o pope_n grand_a surueier_n undertake_v to_o prove_v unto_o we_o all_o the_o pope_n tradition_n concern_v the_o mass_n the_o dirge_n and_o office_n for_o the_o dead_a purgatory_n indulgence_n holy_a water_n holy_a candle_n paschal_n lamb_n rascal_n friar_n and_o monk_n and_o such_o like_a trash_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n he_o shall_v but_o lose_v his_o labour_n and_o percase_o his_o wit_n too_o for_o in_o their_o divine_a writing_n such_o fond_a superstitious_a and_o impious_a doctrine_n have_v no_o defence_n nor_o shelter_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o find_v their_o true_a beginning_n then_o must_v he_o search_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la the_o writing_n of_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n and_o other_o the_o pope_n adherent_n and_o there_o he_o shall_v not_o only_o find_v out_o the_o first_o author_n but_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o novelty_n foolery_n and_o impiety_n of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n chap._n xiii_o that_o popery_n be_v either_o condemn_v or_o not_o know_v by_o king_n and_o prince_n profess_v christian_n religion_n in_o old_a time_n the_o pope_n agent_n when_o they_o be_v upon_o their_o own_o dunghill_n and_o among_o their_o own_o disciple_n and_o favourer_n do_v make_v great_a crack_n as_o if_o the_o popish_a religion_n which_o be_v now_o teach_v at_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a religion_n profess_v by_o ancient_a king_n prince_n and_o emperor_n of_o rome_n that_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o who_o so_o listen_v to_o read_v the_o ancient_a confession_n of_o christian_a king_n and_o the_o law_n make_v by_o they_o both_o for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o for_o the_o repress_v of_o diverse_a error_n shall_v find_v that_o the_o ground_n doctrine_n impiety_n &_o absurdity_n of_o popery_n be_v either_o disallow_v by_o they_o or_o unknowen_a unto_o they_o the_o first_o christian_a king_n of_o britain_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v bede_n and_o other_o of_o latter_a time_n for_o in_o more_o ancient_a history_n there_o be_v no_o record_n of_o such_o a_o king_n or_o such_o matter_n as_o then_o pass_v be_v lucius_n but_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o the_o popish_a mass_n be_v then_o hatch_v or_o that_o eleutherius_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n pretend_v the_o universal_a monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n nay_o we_o read_v that_o irenaeus_n do_v make_v as_o great_a account_n of_o other_o church_n as_o of_o rome_n albeit_o the_o same_o be_v first_o place_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o splendour_n and_o authority_n of_o that_o city_n furthermore_o lucius_n neither_o have_v image_n nor_o worship_v they_o nor_o do_v he_o give_v latria_n to_o the_o cross_n of_o purgat_fw-la one_o and_o indulgence_n he_o can_v not_o hear_v any_o thing_n for_o that_o eleutherius_fw-la as_o yet_o take_v not_o upon_o he_o to_o deliver_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n nor_o to_o grant_v pardon_n a_o poena_fw-la &_o culpa_fw-la final_o if_o kellison_n seek_v to_o prove_v the_o article_n of_o popery_n before_o mention_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o lucius_n you_o shall_v soon_o see_v that_o the_o man_n will_v be_v at_o a_o stand_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n of_o rome_n be_v constantine_n the_o great_a but_o many_o act_n of_o his_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v neither_o a_o slave_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o a_o professor_n of_o popery_n for_o first_o by_o his_o authority_n both_o be_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a assemble_v and_o the_o act_n thereof_o establish_v as_o enschius_n in_o vita_fw-la constantini_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n do_v testify_v second_o that_o faith_n which_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a publish_v he_o profess_v but_o therein_o be_v not_o one_o article_n of_o popery_n establish_v but_o rather_o diverse_a refute_v as_o namely_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v christ_n humanity_n and_o the_o popish_a real_a presence_n and_o dissolve_v priest_n marriage_n for_o if_o christ_n be_v true_a man_n then_o be_v not_o his_o body_n invisible_a and_o impalpable_a in_o the_o sacrament_n again_o if_o christ_n body_n be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n than_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o every_o pix_n if_o the_o same_o be_v to_o come_v from_o heaven_n than_o be_v not_o the_o same_o to_o creep_v out_o of_o a_o pix_n if_o marriage_n of_o priest_n be_v honourable_a and_o not_o to_o be_v dissolve_v as_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o counceil_n of_o nice_a by_o the_o advice_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la then_o do_v the_o papist_n teach_v doctrine_n of_o devil_n that_o condemn_v such_o marriage_n and_o separate_v priest_n from_o their_o wife_n three_o all_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n be_v confirm_v and_o not_o only_o receive_v by_o constantine_n but_o that_o show_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o have_v no_o more_o authority_n in_o his_o province_n than_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o his_o as_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n testify_v the_o 4._o canon_n show_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o great_a authority_n in_o ordain_v bishop_n than_o other_o metropolitan_n the_o five_o canon_n equal_v his_o power_n in_o excommunication_n to_o that_o which_o other_o bishop_n have_v to_o abridge_v this_o matter_n we_o find_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v as_o well_o subject_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a as_o other_o bishop_n final_o we_o find_v that_o constantine_n make_v law_n for_o church_n government_n in_o his_o time_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nay_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v say_v in_o the_o counterfeit_a donation_n of_o constantine_n have_v their_o privilege_n from_o constantine_n and_o not_o contrariwise_o privilegium_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la pontifici_fw-la
contulit_fw-la say_v the_o author_n of_o that_o donation_n ut_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la orbe_fw-la romani_fw-la pontifices_fw-la vel●saecendotes_n ita_fw-la hun●_n caput_fw-la habeant_fw-la sicut_fw-la iudices_fw-la regem_fw-la so_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o preeminence_n of_o roman_a bishop_n over_o all_o priest_n proceed_v from_o the_o emperor_n grant_n and_o not_o from_o any_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n or_o divine_a authority_n likewise_o we_o read_v that_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n be_v call_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o emperor_n and_o that_o their_o act_n and_o decree_n be_v ratify_v by_o they_o and_o not_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n more_o than_o other_o bishop_n as_o be_v pretend_v further_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n publish_v by_o those_o counsel_n and_o receive_v by_o theodosius_n martian●●s_n and_o other_o christian_a emperor_n there_o be_v not_o one_o article_n of_o popery_n so_o much_o as_o mention_v nay_o albeit_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n oppugn_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n concern_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n yet_o prevail_v they_o not_o last_o the_o condemnation_n of_o eutyches_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v overthrow_v the_o popish_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o transubstantiation_n for_o if_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n that_o be_v circumscriptible_a &_o solid_a then_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n real_o in_o every_o consecrate_a host_n and_o if_o that_o according_a as_o after_o the_o union_n of_o the_o nature_n both_o remain_v so_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v after_o consecration_n as_o the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n pretend_v then_o away_o fly_v the_o fancy_n of_o popish_a transubstantiation_n recaredus_n king_n of_o spain_n assemble_v the_o three_o council_n of_o toledo_n chase_v arianisme_n out_o of_o his_o dominion_n publish_v a_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o all_o christian_a bishop_n of_o that_o country_n receive_v and_o govern_v and_o confirm_v the_o council_n publico_fw-la regis_fw-la edicto_fw-la confirmatum_fw-la est_fw-la concilium_fw-la the_o council_n be_v confirm_v by_o public_a proclamation_n of_o the_o king_n say_v the_o compiler_n of_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n final_o in_o all_o the_o act_n there_o be_v not_o one_o article_n of_o popery_n confirm_v but_o the_o 21._o canon_n that_o allow_v psalm_n to_o be_v sing_v at_o burial_n do_v utter_o overthrow_v dirge_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n for_o how_o can_v they_o choose_v but_o sorrow_n for_o the_o dead_a that_o believe_v their_o friend_n soul_n to_o be_v in_o purgatory_n the_o 22._o canon_n forbid_v dance_n and_o immodest_a song_n on_o holy_a day_n the_o 16._o canon_n be_v direct_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n the_o 11._o canon_n reprove_v priest_n that_o absolve_v public_a sinner_n without_o due_a act_n of_o repentance_n which_o be_v a_o abuse_n very_o common_a in_o the_o masspriest_n final_o in_o this_o synod_n the_o spaniard_n follow_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o not_o of_o rome_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o second_o canon_n justinian_n the_o emperor_n as_o be_v report_v in_o the_o law_n inter_fw-la claras_fw-la cod._n de_fw-fr sum_n trin._n publish_v a_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o command_v to_o be_v receive_v throughout_o his_o dominion_n but_o therein_o be_v not_o any_o article_n of_o popery_n mention_v nay_o diverse_a of_o his_o law_n concern_v the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n the_o order_n of_o church_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n declare_v that_o unto_o his_o time_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n belong_v to_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o that_o yet_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o usurp_v his_o general_a authority_n nor_o exclude_v temporal_a prince_n he_o decree_v that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v administer_v contrary_a to_o the_o popish_a form_n in_o a_o audible_a voice_n and_o in_o atongue_n that_o may_v be_v understand_v gregory_n the_o first_o acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n and_o willing_a to_o execute_v his_o commandment_n which_o show_v that_o the_o emperor_n as_o yet_o hold_v his_o authority_n and_o will_v not_o yield_v it_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o faith_n also_o be_v the_o same_o which_o other_o emperor_n profess_v for_o as_o yet_o antichrist_n have_v not_o gain_v the_o primacy_n gregory_n himself_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o serenus_n of_o massilia_n praise_v he_o for_o that_o he_o suffer_v not_o image_n to_o be_v adore_v and_o no_o man_n need_v to_o doubt_v but_o that_o maurice_n the_o emperor_n concur_v with_o he_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n leo_fw-la the_o four_o in_o the_o chapter_n de_fw-fr capitulis_fw-la do_v 11._o profess_v that_o he_o will_v see_v the_o emperor_n order_n by_o all_o mean_v keep_v de_fw-fr capitulis_fw-la vel_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la imperialibus_fw-la vestris_fw-la etc._n etc._n irrefragabiliter_fw-la custodiendis_fw-la say_v he_o quantum_fw-la valuimus_fw-la &_o valemus_fw-la christ_n propitio_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la &_o in_fw-la aewm_fw-la nos_fw-la conseruaturos_fw-la modis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la profitemur_fw-la this_o therefore_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o the_o christian_n faith_n as_o yet_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n &_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v then_o make_v no_o alteration_n by_o their_o decretales_fw-la as_o not_o have_v as_o yet_o settle_v their_o supreme_a and_o tyrannical_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o leo_n neither_o be_v transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n in_o the_o priest_n ear_n for_o all_o sin_n nor_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n hear_v of_o beda_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n praise_v king_n ceolulphus_n for_o that_o he_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n diligent_o but_o now_o among_o papist_n lay-man_n be_v not_o commend_v for_o hear_v scripture_n at_o that_o time_n neither_o be_v the_o 7._o sacrament_n confirm_v nor_o the_o pope_n doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n once_o deliver_v irene_n though_o a_o semipagan_a empress_n and_o a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n yet_o do_v not_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o the_o crucifix_n or_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n charles_n the_o great_a in_o a_o synod_n at_o francford_n condemn_v the_o idolatrous_a decree_n of_o the_o 2._o nicene_n synod_n assemble_v under_o irene_n ansegisus_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 19_o show_v that_o he_o decree_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n beside_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o same_o author_n report_v diverse_a law_n make_v by_o he_o and_o his_o son_n ludovic_n contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o modern_a romish_a church_n kellison_n therefore_o shall_v work_v a_o wonder_n if_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o either_o of_o these_o emperor_n believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v both_o the_o sword_n and_o rule_v both_o on_o earth_n and_o in_o purgatory_n neither_o shall_v he_o be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o they_o believe_v that_o public_a service_n and_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v or_o that_o those_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n that_o neither_o preach_v nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o laterane_n christian_n king_n and_o prince_n know_v now_o what_o transubstantiation_n mean_v neither_o do_v they_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n before_o the_o synod_n at_o constance_n in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n under_o eugenue_n the_o 4._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n of_o purgatory_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n begin_v to_o be_v in_o more_o reputution_n the_o rest_n of_o their_o heresy_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n can_v not_o procure_v to_o be_v authorize_v before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o yet_o the_o french_a refuse_v to_o admit_v the_o act_n of_o that_o conventicle_n and_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o by_o his_o agent_n protest_v against_o they_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n king_n of_o denmark_n prince_n of_o germany_n and_o many_o other_o state_n resolute_o reject_v and_o contemn_v they_o so_o we_o see_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v neuer_o receive_v by_o many_o christian_a prince_n especial_o this_o form_n of_o doctrine_n that_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n the_o pope_n excommunication_n provision_n rapine_n violence_n and_o tyranny_n we_o find_v to_o have_v be_v of_o most_o christian_a king_n resist_v when_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n begin_v to_o lift_v up_o their_o heel_n against_o the_o eastern_a emperor_n leo_n isauricus_n and_o other_o and_o to_o excommunicate_v they_o they_o neglect_v their_o censure_n and_o in_o the_o eastern_a part_n be_v obey_v as_o before_o henry_n the_o 4._o emperor_n of_o rome_n
drive_v gregory_n the_o 7._o out_o of_o his_o seat_n and_o appoint_v another_o in_o his_o place_n henry_n the_o 5._o his_o son_n take_v paschalis_n prisoner_n and_o make_v he_o swear_v to_o certain_a article_n he_o break_v they_o afterward_o i_o confess_v but_o that_o be_v rather_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o pope_n perfidiousness_n than_o a_o proof_n against_o the_o emperor_n authority_n neither_o do_v the_o emperor_n succeed_v for_o many_o year_n cease_v to_o defend_v their_o right_n against_o the_o pope_n encrochment_n and_o usurpation_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o pope_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n and_o rebellion_n of_o subject_n have_v prevail_v against_o they_o and_o when_o they_o can_v not_o by_o force_n resist_v yet_o do_v they_o often_o publish_v their_o complaint_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o message_n of_o maximilian_n the_o first_o to_o the_o pope_n by_o certain_a memorial_n of_o charles_n the_o five_o concern_v wrong_v offer_v by_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o greenance_n collect_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n present_v to_o adrian_n the_o 6._o by_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o bohemian_o english_a french_a and_o other_o nation_n philip_n the_o french_a king_n write_v to_o boniface_n the_o 8._o use_v these_o word_n sciat_fw-la tua_fw-la maxima_fw-la fatuitas_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o temporalibus_fw-la nulli_fw-la subesse_fw-la i_o do_v thy_o great_a foolery_n say_v he_o write_v to_o he_o to_o wit_n that_o for_o temporal_a matter_n we_o be_v subject_a to_o none_o the_o same_o king_n do_v also_o handle_v the_o pope_n nuntioe_n according_a to_o their_o deserve_n henry_n the_o 2._o as_o matthew_n paris_n testify_v forbid_v the_o payment_n of_o peter_n penny_n and_o such_o as_o appeal_v to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o commit_v to_o prison_n appellantes_fw-la ad_fw-la curiam_fw-la rom._n mandavit_fw-la custodiae_fw-la afterward_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o colein_n he_o threatu_v to_o impugn_v the_o pope_n and_o to_o thrust_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n all_o his_o favourer_n papam_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la suos_fw-la say_v he_o manifestè_fw-la impugnabimus_fw-la &_o quicunque_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la mea_fw-la inventus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la qui_fw-la papae_fw-la posthac_fw-la adhaerere_fw-la voluerit_fw-la expelletur_fw-la è_fw-la regno_fw-la happy_a have_v he_o be_v if_o he_o have_v always_o persist_v in_o this_o purpose_n the_o king_n of_o england_n afterward_o by_o their_o law_n against_o provision_n restrain_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o in_o the_o end_n that_o famous_a and_o worthy_a prince_n king_n henry_n the_o eight_o do_v utter_o exclude_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o agent_n from_o all_o jurisdiction_n within_o his_o kingdom_n furthermore_o albeit_o some_o prince_n be_v so_o senseless_a that_o they_o feel_v not_o the_o wrong_v offer_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n yet_o do_v such_o as_o love_v the_o honour_n of_o their_o country_n never_o cease_v to_o complain_v thereof_o alan_n chartier_n show_v that_o priest_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n be_v become_v most_o vile_a and_o that_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v alienate_v from_o the_o pope_n obedience_n corda_fw-la hominum_fw-la ab_fw-la obedientia_fw-la scilicet_fw-la papae_fw-la alienata_fw-la julian_n the_o cardinal_a writing_n to_o eugenius_n the_o four_o show_v it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v lest_o the_o laity_n shall_v fall_v upon_o the_o clergy_n ne_fw-la irruerent_fw-la in_o ecclesiasticos_fw-la laici_fw-la the_o german_n in_o the_o end_n of_o their_o grievance_n say_v that_o they_o neither_o will_v suffer_v nor_o can_v endure_v the_o wrong_n offer_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n dixerunt_fw-la germani_n principes_fw-la say_v he_o that_o report_v their_o grievance_n se_fw-la onera_fw-la papae_fw-la nec_fw-la perferre_fw-la velle_fw-la nec_fw-la tolerare_fw-la posse_fw-la nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangis_n show_v that_o both_o prince_n and_o other_o murmur_v against_o the_o pope_n exaction_n charles_n the_o french_a king_n inveigh_v against_o benet_n the_o 13._o signify_v that_o god_n will_v displace_v the_o pope_n out_o of_o their_o seat_n for_o oppress_v and_o spoil_v christ_n sheep_n facti_fw-la sunt_fw-la greges_fw-la mei_fw-la in_o rapinam_fw-la etc._n etc._n propterea_fw-la cessare_fw-la eos_fw-la faciam_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la pascant_fw-la ulterius_fw-la gregem_fw-la meum_fw-la these_o word_n charles_n apply_v against_o the_o pope_n the_o english_a be_v excommunicate_v in_o king_n johns_n time_n call_v the_o pope_n agent_n marcidos_fw-la ribaldo_n that_o be_v rot_v rascal_n and_o signify_v that_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v their_o tyranny_n petrus_n de_fw-fr ferrarijs_fw-la in_o form_n resp_n rei_fw-la conventi_fw-la bewail_v the_o misery_n of_o christian_a prince_n that_o endure_v so_o many_o wrong_n at_o the_o pope_n hand_n and_o make_v themselves_o his_o slave_n and_o yet_o provide_v no_o remedy_n for_o it_o heu_fw-la miseri_fw-la imperatores_fw-la &_o principes_fw-la seculares_fw-la say_v he_o qui_fw-la haec_fw-la &_o alia_fw-la sustinetis_fw-la &_o vos_fw-la seruos_fw-la pontificum_fw-la facitis_fw-la &_o mundum_fw-la per_fw-la eos_fw-la infinity_n modis_fw-la usurpari_fw-la videtis_fw-la nec_fw-la de_fw-la remedio_fw-la cogitatis_fw-la christian_n prince_n and_o king_n therefore_o have_v always_o abhor_v the_o pope_n tyranny_n &_o refuse_v his_o religion_n and_o the_o more_o christian_n they_o have_v show_v themselves_o the_o more_o resistance_n they_o have_v make_v both_o against_o his_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n and_o his_o usurpation_n and_o abuse_n in_o government_n vlrichus_n vttenus_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o laurentius_n vallaes_n treatise_n against_o the_o counterfeit_a donation_n of_o constantine_n do_v thus_o exclaim_v against_o the_o pope_n as_o enemy_n and_o spoiler_n of_o all_o christian_n anon_o fuerunt_fw-la christianorum_fw-la host_n illi_fw-la pontifices_fw-la qui_fw-la omnium_fw-la ad_fw-la se_fw-la opes_fw-la attraxerunt_fw-la onmibus_fw-la liberis_fw-la seruitutem_fw-la moliti_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-fr imper_v to_o reges_fw-la pe●_n unia_fw-la cite_v de●l_fw-la aliabant_fw-la be_v not_o the_o pope_n enemy_n of_o christian_n which_o draw_v unto_o themselves_o the_o wealth_n of_o all_o and_o endeavour_v to_o oppress_v all_o free_a man_n which_o spoil_a king_n of_o their_o government_n and_o the_o subject_n of_o their_o money_n chap._n xiiii_o that_o the_o ancient_a britan_n and_o english_a be_v not_o first_o convert_v to_o popish_a religion_n let_v that_o abide_v in_o you_o say_v s._n john_n 1._o epist_n 2._o which_o you_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o beginning_n so_o likewise_o we_o say_v let_v we_o abide_v in_o that_o faith_n and_o let_v that_o faith_n abide_v in_o we_o that_o be_v first_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n scholar_n and_o successor_n in_o this_o island_n and_o let_v we_o not_o be_v carry_v away_o by_o the_o poleshorne_a crew_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o believe_v popish_a novelty_n and_o fable_n that_o the_o ancient_a christian_n of_o this_o land_n whether_o britan_n english_a or_o scots_a be_v not_o convert_v to_o popish_a religion_n that_o be_v now_o predominant_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n we_o have_v three_o most_o evident_a demonstration_n to_o assure_v us._n first_a those_o doctrine_n and_o ground_n of_o popery_n which_o before_o i_o have_v mention_v will_v never_o be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o first_o planter_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o this_o land_n and_o very_o absurd_a it_o be_v to_o suppose_v they_o to_o have_v be_v the_o author_n of_o those_o heresy_n impiety_n and_o blasphemy_n which_o be_v so_o rife_o in_o popery_n if_o s._n peter_n or_o s._n paul_n or_o any_o of_o their_o scholar_n do_v plant_v religion_n here_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o they_o teach_v one_o thing_n and_o write_v another_o or_o that_o the_o scholar_n preach_v otherwise_o then_o they_o have_v learn_v from_o their_o master_n if_o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n do_v first_o convert_v the_o britan_n and_o fugatius_n and_o damianus_n confirm_v they_o in_o the_o faith_n or_o if_o austen_n the_o monk_n and_o his_o fellow_n do_v first_o convert_v the_o saxon_n or_o english_a yet_o can_v it_o not_o be_v show_v that_o any_o one_o of_o these_o do_v teach_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o holy_a scripture_n be_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o be_v receive_v or_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popish_a holy_a water_n paschal_n lamb_n tosary_n image_n and_o such_o like_a tradition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o christ_n true_a body_n be_v tear_v with_o tooth_n and_o receive_v down_o into_o the_o belly_n and_o may_v be_v eat_v of_o dog_n and_o hog_n or_o that_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o extreme_a unction_n or_o eat_v saltfish_n and_o redherring_n upon_o friday_n and_o fast_a day_n or_o that_o incense_n be_v to_o be_v burn_v to_o image_n or_o the_o sacrament_n adore_v for_o god_n and_o carry_v about_o in_o procession_n or_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n of_o popery_n before_o mention_v either_o therefore_o let_v parson_n show_v we_o that_o the_o several_a point_n of_o popery_n before_o touch_v be_v teach_v by_o s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n and_o eleutherus_n and_o gregory_n
the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o they_o teach_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n invisible_a or_o inpalpable_a or_o that_o his_o body_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o one_o time_n and_o yet_o not_o continue_v to_o itself_o or_o that_o his_o soul_n be_v omnipotent_a or_o omniscient_a or_o that_o christian_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o dog_n and_o hog_n do_v eat_v christ_n body_n and_o yet_o that_o all_o the_o communicant_n save_o the_o priest_n be_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o that_o christ_n be_v only_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n and_o that_o formal_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v by_o our_o own_o work_n or_o that_o remission_n of_o sin_n can_v be_v obtain_v unless_o we_o come_v to_o auricular_a confession_n and_o have_v the_o masspriest_n absolution_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n out_o of_o superfluous_a merit_n of_o saint_n be_v able_a to_o deliver_v soul_n from_o purgatory_n or_o other_o popish_a heresy_n and_o wicked_a doctrine_n before_o mention_v for_o these_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o which_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v be_v contain_v gregory_n the_o first_o lib._n 4._o epist_n 32._o do_v dislike_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o call_v it_o sacrilegious_a and_o profane_a he_o do_v also_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n lib._n 7._o epist_n 109._o and_o lib._n 9_o epist_n 9_o and_o commend_v serenus_n the_o bishop_n of_o massilia_n for_o reprove_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n neither_o do_v he_o allow_v any_o more_o than_o the_o historical_a use_n of_o they_o that_o purgatory_n which_o gregory_n the_o dialogist_n speak_v of_o differ_v much_o from_o popish_a purgatory_n be_v rather_o design_v for_o venial_a sin_n than_o for_o satisfaction_n for_o temporal_a pain_n after_o the_o fault_n remit_v lib._n moral_a 19_o c._n 16._o he_o show_v that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n be_v not_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o lib._n 14._o moral_n c._n 32._o that_o christ_n body_n be_v solid_a and_o not_o like_o a_o spirit_n and_o lib._n 4._o dial_n c._n 55._o that_o thing_n above_o in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v unite_v to_o thing_n below_o summa_fw-la imis_fw-la consociantur_fw-la of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o presence_n as_o the_o papist_n imagine_v nor_o any_o transubstantiation_n for_o if_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n reside_v above_o be_v unite_v to_o thing_n below_o then_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n include_v within_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o host_n nor_o be_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n abolish_v augustine_n the_o monk_n bring_v with_o he_o a_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o a_o table_n and_o do_v sing_v litany_n as_o bede_n testify_v lib._n 1_o hist_o angl._n c._n 25._o but_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o hoe_v fill_v church_n with_o image_n or_o that_o he_o worship_v christ_n image_n or_o the_o cross_n with_o latria_fw-la or_o that_o in_o his_o litany_n he_o call_v upon_o saint_n or_o angel_n bede_n say_v they_o pray_v to_o god_n litanias_fw-la canentes_fw-la etc._n etc._n domino_fw-la supplicabant_fw-la if_o then_o we_o can_v find_v the_o point_n of_o popery_n which_o we_o refuse_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o in_o any_o record_n mention_v the_o doctrine_n of_o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n eleutherius_fw-la gregory_n or_o austen_n but_o rather_o find_v they_o to_o be_v opposite_a to_o their_o doctrine_n and_o denise_v afterward_o then_o unless_o we_o mean_v to_o remove_v the_o ancient_a limit_n and_o bound_n set_v down_o to_o we_o by_o our_o father_n and_o to_o refuse_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proverb_n 22._o we_o may_v not_o return_v to_o popery_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o first_o converter_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o land_n be_v no_o author_n nor_o favourer_n of_o popish_a superstition_n heresy_n impiety_n and_o blasphemy_n chap._n xv._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v most_o false_o term_v catholic_a religion_n and_o papist_n catholic_n catholic_a religion_n as_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n in_o his_o commonitory_n chap._n 3._o do_v teach_v we_o be_v that_o which_o always_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o of_o all_o christian_n we_o be_v to_o hold_v say_v he_o that_o which_o always_o have_v be_v believe_v of_o all_o christian_n for_o that_o be_v proper_o catholic_a but_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n contain_v in_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_z dispute_v of_o the_o canonist_n and_o schoolman_n have_v not_o always_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o christian_n their_o faith_n therefore_o be_v not_o catholic_a the_o assumption_n be_v prove_v not_o only_o by_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o decretales_fw-la gloss_n of_o canonist_n and_o sum_n and_o resolution_n of_o the_o school_n divine_v but_o also_o by_o the_o falsehood_n and_o contrariety_n of_o the_o doctrine_n therein_o contain_v nicholas_n in_o his_o decretale_a ego_fw-la berengarius_fw-la de_fw-mi consecrat_fw-mi do_v 2._o teach_v that_o christ_n body_n sensual_o be_v handle_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o priest_n and_o tear_v with_o tooth_n but_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o scripture_n father_n and_o truth_n innocent_n in_o the_o chapter_n firmiter_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trinit_fw-la &_o fid_fw-we cath_z say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiat_fw-la into_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v false_a for_o christ_n say_v of_o bread_n which_o he_o take_v this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o canonist_n honour_n the_o pope_n as_o a_o god_n on_o earth_n as_o the_o head_n foundationmonah_o rcand_a spouse_n of_o the_o church_n the_o schoolman_n brabble_n one_o with_o another_o and_o sometime_o change_v their_o own_o opinion_n bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la purgat_fw-la c._n 3._o confess_v that_o thomas_n aquinas_n change_v his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o merit_n of_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n most_o schoolman_n build_v doctrine_n of_o faith_n upon_o philosophical_a ground_n and_o very_o both_o from_o scripture_n and_o father_n in_o their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o divine_a attribute_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o soul_n of_o merit_n of_o sacrament_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n how_o then_o can_v we_o repute_v these_o doctrine_n to_o be_v catholic_a it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o catholic_n say_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n commonit_a c._n 34._o to_o keep_v the_o doctrine_n commit_v to_o they_o and_o leave_v with_o they_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o to_o avoid_v profane_a novelty_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o schoolman_n concern_v the_o divine_a attribute_n concern_v the_o example_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n bring_v by_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n the_o eat_n of_o christ_n body_n by_o brute_n beast_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n be_v full_a of_o profaneness_n and_o novelty_n their_o reason_n also_o be_v more_o philosophical_a and_o sophistical_a then_o apostolical_a all_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o and_o they_o be_v mere_a novelty_n as_o the_o decretales_fw-la whereon_o they_o depend_v declare_v leo_n epist_n 81._o say_v that_o there_o be_v one_o true_a only_o perfect_a and_o inviolable_a faith_n whereto_o nothing_o can_v be_v add_v and_o from_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v take_v but_o unto_o this_o faith_n the_o pope_n have_v add_v their_o determination_n concern_v tradition_n the_o carnal_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n transubstantiation_n the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n the_o pope_n vicarship_n general_a and_o universal_a power_n purgatory_n indulgence_n the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n of_o doctrine_n do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o popery_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n come_v in_o after_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o christian_a catholic_a faith_n and_o add_v unto_o it_o furthermore_o as_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n be_v catholic_a and_o universal_a so_o heretical_a opinion_n be_v particular_a and_o peculiar_a to_o certain_a sect_n and_o person_n and_o time_n but_o we_o have_v show_v that_o popery_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o pack_n of_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n last_o by_o many_o particular_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n have_v neither_o be_v teach_v at_o all_o time_n nor_o embrace_v of_o all_o christian_n nor_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n which_o do_v plain_o declare_v that_o neither_o the_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a nor_o the_o professor_n thereof_o true_o term_v catholic_n first_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o imperfect_a rule_n and_o unsufficient_a without_o tradition_n and_o speak_v lewd_o of_o they_o call_v they_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n a_o kill_a and_o dead_a letter_n a_o matter_n of_o strife_n and_o what_o else_o they_o listen_v to_o devise_v in_o their_o
reproachful_a humour_n but_o never_o do_v catholic_n so_o teach_v the_o apostle_n 2._o tim._n 3._o say_v they_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o salvation_n and_o that_o they_o be_v give_v of_o god_n to_o make_v the_o man_n of_o god_n perfect_a s._n augustine_n lib._n 2._o the_o doct_n christ_n c._n 9_o say_v that_o all_o thing_n necessary_o belong_v to_o faith_n or_o manner_n be_v contain_v in_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n the_o ancient_a father_n do_v every_o where_o speak_v honourable_o of_o scripture_n and_o ireney_n say_v it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o heretic_n when_o they_o be_v convince_v by_o scripture_n to_o accuse_v they_o second_o these_o be_v special_a point_n of_o popery_n viz._n that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o foundation_n head_n and_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n that_o his_o decretales_fw-la concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v infallible_a that_o unwritten_a tradition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v and_o equal_a to_o scripture_n that_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v authentical_a for_o the_o most_o of_o this_o be_v deliver_v and_o determine_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_v 4._o the_o rest_n be_v hold_v by_o the_o canonist_n and_o the_o pope_n proctor_n these_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o who_o show_v we_o that_o no_o other_o foundation_n can_v be_v lay_v but_o christ_n jesus_n and_o ephes_n 2_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 1._o show_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n chrysostome_n hom_n 6._o in_o matth._n say_v the_o church_n be_v jerusalem_n who_o foundation_n be_v lay_v upon_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n in_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v contrary_a both_o to_o scripture_n and_o father_n as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr pontifice_fw-la rom._n the_o diversity_n and_o contrariety_n of_o diverse_a edition_n of_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n we_o have_v prove_v heretofore_o that_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o original_n it_o be_v apparent_a and_o arias_n montanus_n erasmus_n caietan_n and_o diverse_a other_o acknowledge_v it_o the_o father_n in_o matter_n of_o doubt_n send_v we_o to_o the_o original_n the_o falsehood_n of_o romish_a tradition_n &_o the_o repugnance_n betwixt_o they_o and_o scripture_n i_o have_v prove_v in_o my_o book_n the_o scripture_n against_o bellarmine_n three_o the_o papist_n allow_v no_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n against_o that_o sense_n 4._o cont._n trident._n sess_v 4._o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v contra_fw-la eum_fw-la sensum_fw-la quam_fw-la tenuit_fw-la &_o tenet_fw-la sancta_fw-la mater_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la and_o by_o the_o church_n they_o understand_v the_o pope_n principal_o but_o that_o be_v never_o the_o opinion_n of_o catholic_n nay_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o follower_n allow_v diverse_a interpretation_n contrary_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o ancient_a father_n and_o catholic_n they_o believe_v that_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n feed_v my_o sheep_n do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o thereby_o he_o have_v power_n to_o depose_v prince_n these_o word_n hiercm_n 1._o i_o have_v appomt_v thou_o over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n they_o transfer_v to_o the_o pope_n boniface_n the_o 8._o in_o the_o chap._n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la extr_n demaior_n &_o obed_a do_v thereof_o conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o judge_v all_o earthly_a prince_n innocent_n the_o 3._o in_o the_o chap._n solitae_fw-la de_fw-fr maior_fw-la &_o ob_v because_o it_o be_v say_v genes_n 1._o that_o god_n make_v a_o great_a and_o lesser_a light_n in_o the_o firmament_n collect_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o emperor_n christ_n say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o they_o interpret_v it_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v offer_v up_o my_o body_n and_o blood_n to_o my_o father_n and_o do_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n christ_n say_v search_v the_o scripture_n and_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o which_o they_o expound_v as_o if_o he_o have_v forbid_a laieman_n either_o to_o search_v scripture_n or_o to_o receive_v the_o cup._n they_o have_v also_o infinite_a other_o such_o like_a perverse_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o catholic_a father_n and_o yet_o stifle_v maintain_v they_o 4._o catholic_n never_o allow_v the_o legend_n of_o s._n george_n s._n christopher_n s._n catherine_n s._n ursula_n s._n cyprian_n the_o magician_n and_o such_o legend_n as_o the_o papist_n read_v in_o their_o church_n public_o and_o believe_v they_o as_o tradition_n of_o their_o elder_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n the_o legend_n of_o s._n george_n of_o cyricus_n &_o julitta_n of_o abgarus_n and_o of_o the_o invention_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v condemn_v by_o gelasius_n c._n sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la do_v 15._o 5._o tho._n aquin._n opusc_fw-la count_n errores_fw-la graec._n say_v it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v the_o determination_n of_o tho_o pope_n in_o matter_n belong_v to_o say_v or_o manner_n a_o matter_n never_o believe_v by_o catholic_n 6._o bellarmine_n and_o other_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n law_n do_v bind_v we_o in_o conscience_n but_o this_o never_o enter_v into_o the_o thought_n of_o catholic_n s._n james._n c._n 4._o say_v we_o have_v only_o one_o lawgiver_n and_o judge_n that_o can_v save_v and_o destroy_v 7._o they_o believe_v that_o image_n be_v to_o he_o make_v and_o worship_v and_o consequent_o fill_v every_o corner_n of_o their_o church_n with_o image_n they_o also_o think_v it_o lawful_a to_o picture_n god_n the_o father_n like_o a_o old_a man_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o dove_n but_o the_o law_n of_o god_n express_o forbid_v the_o worship_n of_o grave_a image_n and_o all_o such_o similitude_n and_o lactantius_n lib._n 2._o instil_v c._n 19_o say_v there_o be_v no_o religion_n where_o such_o image_n be_v s._n augustine_n the_o fid_fw-we &_o symbolo_fw-la say_v that_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o place_v the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n tale_n simulachrum_fw-la deo_fw-la nefas_fw-la est_fw-la christiano_n in_fw-la templo_fw-la collocare_fw-la 8._o the_o jebusite_n of_o collem_fw-la in_o their_o censure_n teach_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n and_o that_o our_o life_n and_o salvation_n do_v consist_v therein_o but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o law_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o death_n and_o irenaeus_n testify_v lib._n 3_o advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 20._o that_o the_o law_n be_v spiritual_a do_v only_o manifest_a sin_n and_o not_o kill_v it_o and_o so_o do_v catholic_n believe_v 9_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_v 5._o teach_v that_o concupiscence_n be_v not_o sin_n in_o the_o regenerate_a but_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 7._o show_v the_o concupiscence_n be_v sin_n and_o all_o true_a catholic_n must_v needs_o confess_v it_o see_v it_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o law_n 10_o bellarmine_n and_o his_o consort_n believe_v that_o all_o christian_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n perfect_o but_o catholic_n believe_v that_o this_o savour_v of_o pelagianisme_n for_o if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o law_n of_o god_n perfect_o then_o may_v they_o live_v without_o all_o sin_n which_o augustine_n and_o hierome_n in_o their_o dispute_n against_o the_o pelagian_n declare_v to_o be_v heresy_n 11_o papist_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v able_a to_o dispense_v with_o oath_n and_o to_o absolve_v subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n and_o fealty_n to_o their_o prince_n but_o catholic_n assure_v themselves_o that_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o take_v god_n name_n in_o vain_a and_o to_o violate_v lawful_a oath_n upon_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o other_o man_n warrant_n 12_o papist_n teach_v that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v exempt_a from_o original_a sin_n as_o we_o may_v perceive_v by_o bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o the_o amiss_o great_a c._n 15._o and_o by_o the_o decrerale_fw-mi of_o sixtus_n 4._o and_o this_o be_v the_o most_o common_a opinion_n but_o catholic_n think_v contrary_a for_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 5._o say_v that_o through_o the_o offence_n of_o one_o all_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o condemnation_n 13._o they_o believe_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n house_n be_v carry_v out_o of_o galiley_n into_o dalmatia_n and_o from_o thence_o into_o italy_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v now_o at_o loreto_n but_o catholic_n laugh_v at_o such_o fable_n and_o esteem_v the_o worship_n
platina_n say_v obtain_v of_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o hold_v the_o head_n of_o other_o church_n the_o council_n of_o rome_n that_o authorize_v the_o popish_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v celebrate_v under_o pope_n nicolas_n the_o 2._o some_o 1050._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o 2._o nicene_n council_n that_o establish_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n in_o some_o sort_n be_v assemble_v long_o before_o under_o the_o reign_n of_o irene_n but_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n can_v not_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o western_a church_n till_o long_o after_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n that_o decree_v transubstantiation_n be_v assemble_v in_o the_o time_n of_o innocentius_n the_o 3._o the_o council_n of_o constance_n that_o first_o bring_v in_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n and_o the_o subsistence_n of_o accident_n without_o subject_n be_v summon_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1414_o the_o synod_n of_o florence_n that_o first_o establish_v the_o 7._o sacrament_n and_o begin_v to_o talk_v of_o their_o form_n and_o confirm_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o purgatory_n publish_v her_o decree_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1439._o the_o act_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n that_o make_v up_o a_o complete_a body_n of_o popery_n be_v confirm_v by_o pius_n the_o 4._o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1564._o and_o this_o be_v the_o antiquity_n of_o those_o conventicle_n that_o do_v principal_o confirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n the_o schoolman_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1200._o the_o father_n of_o they_o all_o be_v peter_n lombard_n that_o flourish_v some_o 1140._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o canonist_n begin_v after_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o nine_o that_o live_v and_o flourish_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n 1230._o the_o chief_a founder_n of_o popery_n be_v the_o pope_n by_o their_o authority_n the_o cardinal_n by_o their_o counseill_n the_o monk_n and_o friar_n by_o their_o book_n and_o preach_v the_o masspriest_n by_o their_o mass_v and_o practise_v the_o dinel_n himself_o by_o his_o craft_n malice_n and_o violence_n the_o pope_n authority_n in_o ecclesiastical_a canse_v be_v not_o great_a before_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o three_o nor_o in_o temporal_a matter_n before_o gregory_n the_o seven_o boniface_n the_o nine_o as_o theodoric_n à_fw-la niem_fw-la testify_v by_o craft_n enter_v upon_o the_o temporal_a inrisdiction_n of_o rome_n the_o cardinal_n be_v but_o parish_n priest_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o pope_n of_o a_o priest_n become_v a_o prince_n the_o monk_n in_o the_o west_n church_n be_v descend_v from_o benet_n of_o nursia_n that_o live_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 530._o the_o friar_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1230._o their_o first_o father_n be_v francis_n and_o dominicke_n the_o last_o brood_n of_o friar_n fly_v abroad_o into_o the_o world_n under_o the_o lead_n of_o ignatius_n loyola_n a_o lame_a soldier_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1540_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v up_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n count_v from_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n begin_v to_o be_v loose_v again_o about_o the_o time_n of_o innocent_a the_o three_o and_o by_o all_o fraud_n to_o work_v in_o the_o head_n of_o pope_n friar_n monk_n and_o masspriest_n and_o with_o violence_n to_o make_v opposition_n against_o all_o those_o that_o preach_v the_o truth_n the_o foundation_n therefore_o of_o popery_n be_v so_o late_o lay_v and_o the_o chief_a founder_n thereof_o begin_v to_o stir_v so_o long_o after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n it_o be_v great_a simplicity_n if_o we_o shall_v affirm_v popery_n to_o be_v ancient_a but_o the_o same_o do_v most_o clear_o appear_v by_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n of_o popery_n which_o the_o pope_n factour_n maintain_v against_o us._n first_o they_o hold_v that_o holy_a scripture_n be_v imperfect_a and_o no_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c_o 12._o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v only_o apart_o of_o the_o rule_n but_o none_o but_o heretic_n in_o ancient_a time_n do_v derogate_v from_o scripture_n 2._o they_o teach_v that_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n but_o that_o be_v first_o determine_v in_o the_o 4._o session_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n 3._o in_o that_o wicked_a conventicle_n also_o they_o first_o determine_v that_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n shall_v be_v authentical_a 4._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v sovereign_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o principal_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n be_v a_o point_n teach_v of_o late_a since_o friar_n begin_v to_o steel_n their_o face_n with_o a_o double_a mask_n of_o impudence_n 5._o before_o the_o late_a conventicle_n of_o trent_n we_o never_o read_v but_o that_o concupiscence_n be_v sin_n both_o in_o the_o regenerate_a and_o unregenerat_a as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 6._o stapleton_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o relection_n of_o doctrinal_a principle_n be_v the_o first_o man_n that_o ever_o teach_v that_o we_o hear_v god_n speak_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o his_o authority_n 7._o the_o first_o that_o ever_o call_v the_o pope_n a_o god_n on_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o pope_n canonist_n they_o likewise_o begin_v first_o to_o call_v he_o the_o head_n and_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n a_o universal_a bishop_n 8._o the_o papist_n of_o late_a time_n only_o begin_v to_o prohibit_v scripture_n to_o be_v read_v public_o in_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o to_o repine_v at_o god_n people_n that_o desire_v to_o read_v they_o in_o those_o tongue_n for_o the_o ancient_a father_n exhort_v man_n to_o read_v scripture_n 9_o since_o dioclesian_n time_n we_o do_v not_o read_v of_o any_o that_o burn_v book_n of_o scripture_n beside_o papist_n neither_o do_v any_o since_o his_o time_n hold_v out_o his_o foot_n to_o be_v kiss_v 10._o of_o late_a time_n papist_n believe_v no_o catholic_a church_n but_o that_o which_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n whereas_o in_o time_n past_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v disperse_v through_o all_o nation_n and_o not_o universal_o subject_v to_o other_o head_n than_o christ_n 11._o the_o romish_a church_n now_o observe_v not_o the_o old_a canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o they_o be_v common_o call_v ex_fw-la 84._o apostolicis_fw-la canonibus_fw-la say_v medina_n de_fw-fr sacror_fw-la hom_n continent_n c._n 105._o quos_fw-la clemens_n romanus_n pontifex_fw-la &_o eorundem_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la discipulus_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la coegit_fw-la vix_fw-la sex_n aut_fw-la octo_fw-la latina_n ecclesia_fw-la nunc_fw-la obseruat_fw-la martin_n perez_n also_o de_fw-la tradit_fw-la part_n 3._o c._n de_fw-fr authorit_fw-fr cc._n apost_n confess_v that_o the_o apostle_n canon_n now_o be_v not_o well_o observe_v 12._o the_o ancient_a christian_n do_v never_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o s._n michael_n to_z peter_n and_o paul_n and_o other_o saint_n as_o the_o romish_a masspriest_n do_v 13._o of_o late_o the_o clerk_n at_o mass_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o absolve_v the_o priest_n and_o to_o pray_v for_o he_o a_o matter_n both_o strange_a and_o absurd_a 14._o the_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n set_v out_o by_o pius_n the_o four_o concern_v romish_a tradition_n instification_n by_o work_n the_o seven_o sacrament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n indulgence_n and_o such_o like_a point_n of_o popery_n be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o the_o time_n of_o that_o wicked_a pope_n 15._o the_o papist_n can_v not_o show_v that_o any_o christian_a before_o of_o late_o dare_v cut_v out_o the_o second_o commandment_n out_o of_o the_o first_o table_n as_o they_o have_v presume_v to_o do_v in_o their_o short_a catechism_n this_o they_o do_v know_v themselves_o to_o be_v guilty_a in_o worship_v image_n of_o the_o breach_n thereof_o 16._o the_o decree_n of_o sixtus_n the_o four_o concern_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n without_o original_a sin_n be_v but_o a_o late_a device_n 17._o it_o be_v not_o long_o since_o the_o papist_n teach_v that_o venial_a sin_n be_v do_v away_o with_o holy_a water_n 18._o he_o shall_v be_v very_o shameless_a that_o will_v say_v that_o christian_n in_o time_n past_o do_v whip_v themselves_o either_o go_v in_o procession_n or_o before_o the_o crucifix_n as_o now_o papist_n do_v hope_v to_o redeem_v their_o sin_n with_o their_o own_o blood_n 19_o ancient_a christian_n never_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v sin_n to_o transgress_v
be_v summon_v by_o k._n recaredus_n who_o by_o his_o authority_n propose_v a_o form_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o council_n the_o same_o also_o follow_v the_o form_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n all_o which_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n now_o mislike_v in_o the_o 6._o synod_n the_o emperor_n preside_v as_o appear_v by_o diverse_a act_n of_o that_o synod_n there_o it_o be_v decree_v c._n 13._o that_o priest_n and_o deacon_n shall_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o their_o wife_n that_o none_o shall_v fast_o on_o sunday_n or_o saturdays_n in_o lent_n that_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v paint_v in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o lamb_n and_o that_o the_o communicant_n shall_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n with_o their_o hand_n all_o which_o canon_n condemn_v the_o modern_a practice_n of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n the_o 2._o nicene_n council_n say_v that_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v form_v and_o act._n 7._o that_o the_o cross_n and_o other_o image_n be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o latria_fw-la which_o be_v direct_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n the_o council_n of_o lateran_n under_o innocent_a the_o three_o mention_v only_o two_o sacrament_n in_o the_o chap._n firmiter_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trinit_fw-la &_o fid_fw-we cath._n there_o also_o somewhat_o be_v say_v of_o penance_n but_o the_o same_o be_v not_o reckon_v there_o as_o a_o sacrament_n if_o then_o late_a counsel_n make_v sometime_o against_o papist_n little_o be_v they_o to_o hope_v for_o proof_n of_o their_o heresy_n out_o of_o the_o first_o ancient_a counsel_n the_o popish_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n contain_v real_o in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n transubstantiation_n the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o pope_n supreme_a power_n in_o dispense_n against_o law_n or_o rather_o in_o break_v law_n the_o popish_a worship_n of_o image_n angel_n and_o saint_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o heresy_n shall_v never_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o ancient_a counsel_n but_o easy_o may_v they_o be_v reproove_v by_o they_o chap._n xviii_o that_o popery_n be_v not_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n to_o handle_v this_o point_n full_o will_v require_v a_o large_a volume_n but_o we_o will_v only_o allege_v a_o few_o argument_n for_o proof_n of_o our_o assertion_n refer_v the_o reader_n for_o the_o rest_n to_o our_o large_a dispute_n against_o the_o papist_n wherein_o we_o challenge_v they_o that_o in_o no_o one_o point_n of_o faith_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o they_o jump_v with_o the_o father_n and_o that_o may_v appear_v in_o a_o generality_n first_o for_o that_o in_o most_o point_n and_o that_o of_o great_a difference_n they_o be_v destitute_a of_o father_n as_o for_o example_n where_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n and_o other_o not_o found_v in_o hebrew_n to_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o 4._o evangelist_n that_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v read_v public_o in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o hearer_n that_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a translation_n be_v more_o authentical_a than_o the_o original_a book_n in_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a that_o christ_n body_n may_v be_v both_o visible_a and_o invisible_a at_o one_o time_n and_o be_v in_o many_o place_n also_o at_o once_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o and_o carnal_o contain_v and_o offer_v for_o quick_a and_o dead_a in_o the_o mass_n that_o christian_n not_o consecrate_v be_v to_o receive_v the_o communion_n only_o under_o one_o kind_n that_o in_o purgatory_n soul_n satisfy_v for_o temporal_a pain_n of_o sin_n remit_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o dispense_n the_o merit_n of_o saint_n by_o indulgence_n be_v able_a to_o deliver_v soul_n from_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n that_o charity_n be_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v that_o grace_n that_o make_v we_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o diverse_a other_o doctrine_n of_o that_o nature_n second_o they_o oftentimes_o acknowledge_v the_o father_n error_n bellarmine_n de_fw-fr gratia_fw-la primi_fw-la hominis_fw-la c._n 16._o tax_v theodoret_n and_o procopius_n for_o their_o opinion_n concern_v the_o cherubin_n set_v for_o the_o guard_n of_o paradise_n haec_fw-la opinio_fw-la say_v he_o tam_fw-la est_fw-la inepta_fw-la &_o ridieula_fw-la &c._n &c._n like_o wise_a lib._n 2._o de_fw-la concilijs_fw-la c._n 8._o he_o reprehend_v irenaeus_n cyprian_n chrysostome_n and_o oecumenius_n canus_n lib._n 7._o loc_fw-la theol_fw-it c._n 7._o rehearse_v diverse_a of_o the_o father_n and_o namely_o of_o those_o which_o believe_v that_o adam_n soul_n be_v create_v before_o his_o body_n and_o that_o angel_n be_v create_v before_o the_o world_n and_o that_o deny_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v see_v god_n before_o the_o last_o judgement_n general_o they_o tax_v origen_n for_o diverse_a heresy_n and_o novelty_n eusebius_n for_o favour_v origen_n and_o arius_n papias_n and_o irenaeus_n for_o hold_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o millenarian_o cyprian_a for_o rebaptise_v heretic_n hilary_n for_o teach_v that_o christ_n in_o his_o passion_n feel_v not_o any_o pain_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o lombard_n seut_fw-fr lib._n 3._o do_v 15._o russine_n for_o maintain_v both_o the_o error_n of_o origen_n and_o pelagius_n in_o these_o point_n therefore_o and_o such_o like_v they_o follow_v not_o the_o father_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n three_o diverse_a book_n be_v publish_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n that_o be_v never_o write_v by_o they_o as_o for_o example_n the_o decretales_fw-la that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n diverse_a act_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sinuessa_n neocaesarea_n rome_n under_o sylvester_n and_o diverse_a other_o the_o commentary_n upon_o job_n set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o origen_n certain_a treatise_n of_o zion_n and_o sina_n and_o of_o the_o invention_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n head_n set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o cyprian_a a_o sermon_n de_fw-fr assumptione_n beatae_fw-la mariae_fw-la set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o hierome_n diverse_a sermon_n and_o epistle_n set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o ambrose_n chrysostome_n and_o other_o father_n diverse_a legend_n condemn_v by_o gelasiu●_n c._n sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la do_v 15._o and_o some_o of_o these_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o deny_v not_o to_o be_v counterfeit_a as_o do_v appear_v by_o the_o censure_n of_o gelasius_n above_o mention_v of_o erasmus_n caietan_n sixtus_n senensis_n and_o other_o popish_a writer_n now_o they_o that_o bring_v forth_o counterret_n and_o basterdly_a writing_n of_o heretic_n and_o man_n unlearned_a in_o lieu_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o father_n must_v first_o prove_v that_o the_o writing_n allege_v by_o they_o be_v authentical_a before_o they_o can_v say_v that_o they_o allege_v father_n four_o the_o father_n be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o opinion_n chrysostome_n homil_n 18._o in_o genes_n nyssenus_n de_fw-fr create_v hommis_fw-la c._n 18._o hierome_n lib._n 1._o in_o jovinianum_n and_o other_o suppose_v that_o if_o adam_n have_v not_o fall_v neither_o woman_n shall_v have_v be_v subject_a unto_o man_n nor_o shall_v mankind_n have_v be_v propagate_v by_o marriage_n but_o s._n augustine_n lib._n 14._o the_o civet_n dei_fw-la c._n 21._o and_o lib._n 9_o de_fw-fr genes_n ad_fw-la lit_fw-fr c._n 3._o and_o eucherius_n and_o other_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n hierome_n in_o c._n 1._o eccles_n and_o other_o do_v hold_v that_o solomon_n repent_v himself_o of_o his_o sin_n augustine_n in_o psal_n 126._o think_v otherwise_o concern_v the_o beginning_n of_o soul_n and_o their_o estate_n also_o after_o this_o life_n the_o father_n be_v divide_v some_o think_v that_o after_o divorce_v the_o party_n innocent_a may_v marry_v other_o think_v contrary_a great_a difference_n also_o there_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n about_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n the_o fast_a of_o saturday_n and_o lent_n these_o therefore_o that_o allege_v a_o father_n or_o two_o where_o the_o sound_a and_o best_a learn_v think_v otherwise_o can_v say_v that_o father_n make_v for_o they_o final_o albeit_o all_o the_o father_n shall_v speak_v against_o the_o pope_n yet_o do_v not_o the_o papist_n value_v they_o at_o any_o thing_n si_fw-la totus_fw-la mundus_fw-la sententiaret_fw-la contra_fw-la papam_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v give_v sentence_n against_o the_o pope_n say_v a_o canonist_n yet_o be_v we_o to_o stand_v to_o the_o pope_n determination_n common_o the_o papist_n make_v as_o light_v account_n of_o father_n as_o any_o man_n if_o they_o speak_v against_o they_o caictan_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o commentary_n upon_o genesis_n signify_v that_o he_o go_v against_o the_o stream_n of_o the_o doctor_n in_o expound_v scripture_n the_o
c._n in_o canonicis_fw-la do_v 19_o do_v falsify_v s._n augustine_n in_o our_o country_n the_o papist_n have_v falsify_v a_o statute_n anno_fw-la 2._o henrici_fw-la 4._o c._n 15._o by_o add_v these_o word_n ac_fw-la etiam_fw-la communitates_fw-la dictiregni_fw-la thereby_o to_o authorise_v their_o cruel_a burn_a of_o christian_n as_o by_o statute_n whereas_o in_o the_o original_a roll_n no_o such_o word_n be_v to_o be_v find_v so_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o the_o cruel_a execution_n of_o christian_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n be_v contrary_a to_o law_n he_o that_o look_v into_o the_o original_a record_n in_o the_o tower_n shall_v find_v this_o most_o true_a we_o may_v therefore_o say_v of_o our_o adversary_n that_o which_o hierome_n in_o symbolum_fw-la russini_fw-la say_v of_o man_n of_o their_o quality_n perversi_fw-la homines_fw-la ad_fw-la assertionem_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la suorum_fw-la sub_fw-la virorum_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la nomine_fw-la interseruerunt_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la illi_fw-la nunquam_fw-la scripserunt_fw-la nonnulli_fw-la hiberas_fw-la naenias_fw-la libris_fw-la authenticis_fw-la praeferunt_fw-la perverse_a man_n for_o proof_n of_o their_o opinion_n have_v interlace_v under_o the_o name_n of_o holy_a man_n thing_n which_o they_o never_o write_v and_o some_o prefer_v idle_a fable_n before_o authentical_a book_n may_v we_o think_v they_o then_o honest_a man_n which_o practise_v such_o falsity_n chap._n xxiiii_o that_o popery_n stand_v much_o upon_o heathenish_a observance_n and_o custom_n christian_n religion_n intend_v the_o overthrow_n of_o heathenish_a impiety_n and_o idolatry_n yet_o such_o be_v the_o craft_n of_o satan_n that_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o have_v establish_v many_o heathenish_a custom_n under_o colour_n of_o christian_a religion_n for_o first_o as_o the_o law_n of_o heathen_a nation_n be_v partly_o write_v and_o partly_o unwritten_a so_o our_o adversary_n have_v one_o word_n of_o god_n write_v and_o another_o unwritten_a &_o as_o we_o read_v sess_v 4._o council_n trid._n do_v esteem_n both_o with_o equal_a affection_n but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n and_o ireney_n lib._n 3._o c._n 1._o say_v the_o scripture_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n neque_fw-la hominis_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la sequi_fw-la oportet_fw-la sed_fw-la dei_fw-la veritatem_fw-la say_v cyprian_n lib._n 2._o epist_n 3._o that_o be_v we_o be_v not_o to_o follow_v man_n custom_n but_o god_n truth_n our_o church_n say_v saluianus_n lib._n 5._o the_o provident_a des_fw-fr be_v more_o happy_o found_v upon_o the_o scripture_n only_o videtur_fw-la nostrae_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ex_fw-la una_fw-la seripturafeliciùs_fw-la instituta_fw-la second_o the_o schoolman_n build_v their_o opinion_n as_o well_o upon_o aristotle_n and_o other_o philosopher_n and_o their_o authority_n as_o upon_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n bernard_n of_o luzemburg_n in_o catal_a haeret_fw-la show_v how_o the_o doctor_n of_o colein_n define_v that_o aristotle_n be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o christ_n in_o naturalibus_fw-la as_o john_n baptist_n be_v his_o forerunner_n in_o divinis_fw-la write_v upon_o the_o first_o book_n of_o lombard_n sentence_n do_v 3._o they_o seek_v out_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o 3._o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n by_o similitude_n draw_v out_o of_o philosophy_n by_o the_o same_o also_o they_o hope_v to_o find_v out_o the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n albeit_o the_o prophet_n do_v declare_v it_o to_o be_v menarrable_a and_o the_o like_a they_o attempt_v in_o dispute_v of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n gratian_n in_o the_o chap._n decretis_fw-la do_v 21._o talk_v of_o diverse_a order_n and_o degree_n in_o the_o romish_a hierarchy_n confess_v that_o this_o difference_n be_v deduce_v from_o the_o gentile_n horum_fw-la discretio_fw-la say_v he_o a_o gentilibus_fw-la maximè_fw-la introducta_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la suos_fw-la flamines_fw-la alios_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la flamines_fw-la alios_fw-la archislamines_fw-la alios_fw-la protoslamines_fw-la appellabant_fw-la gregory_n the_o first_o writing_n to_o mellitus_n as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o bede_n lib._n 1._o hist_o angl._n c._n 30._o permit_v the_o english_a to_o build_v booth_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o their_o church_n and_o to_o kill_v ox_n for_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n which_o be_v custom_n of_o pagan_n serve_v idol_n boniface_n the_o 4._o consecrate_a the_o church_n call_v pantheon_n wherein_o cybele_n and_o all_o heathen_a god_n be_v worship_v to_o our_o lady_n and_o all_o saint_n as_o be_v testify_v by_o platina_n john_n di_fw-fr pineda_n and_o other_o this_o show_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o saint_n be_v succeed_v in_o lieu_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n and_o heathen_a god_n baruch_n c._n 6._o speak_v of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o gentile_n say_v they_o have_v their_o head_n and_o beard_n shave_v from_o they_o therefore_o come_v the_o popish_a shave_n of_o their_o prìest_n head_n and_o beard_n from_o they_o also_o the_o papist_n borrow_v the_o scourge_v themselves_o before_o the_o cross_n and_o other_o image_n for_o before_o their_o idol_n the_o priest_n of_o baal_n do_v lance_v themselves_o the_o priest_n of_o cybele_n do_v also_o whip_v themselves_o as_o apuleius_n testify_v the_o gentile_n do_v keep_v secret_a the_o mystery_n of_o their_o religion_n so_o do_v the_o papist_n likewise_o utter_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o a_o low_a voice_n lest_o the_o people_n shall_v hear_v it_o and_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o unknowen_a and_o strange_a language_n and_o they_o yield_v this_o reason_n lest_o holy_a thing_n shall_v be_v cast_v to_o dog_n the_o best_a ground_n that_o bellarmine_n lay_v for_o proof_n of_o the_o pope_n monarchy_n be_v for_o that_o the_o gentile_n think_v that_o form_n of_o government_n best_a but_o god_n in_o dispose_v of_o matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n borow_v no_o precedent_n from_o the_o gentile_n thomas_n aquinas_n p._n 3._o q._n 59_o art_n 1._o by_o a_o philosophical_a argument_n draw_v from_o the_o similitude_n between_o our_o spiritual_a and_o corporal_a life_n prove_v the_o number_n of_o his_o seven_o sacrament_n by_o philosophy_n also_o the_o pope_n agent_n prove_v that_o one_o body_n may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o and_o yet_o sill_z no_o place_n out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n certes_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o derive_v any_o proof_n for_o it_o the_o worship_n of_o saint_n be_v a_o mere_a trick_n of_o gentilism_n for_o as_o the_o gentile_n have_v one_o principal_a god_n and_o diverse_a demie_fw-fr and_o inferior_a god_n so_o have_v the_o papist_n ambrose_n in_o chap._n 1._o ad_fw-la rom._n say_v the_o gentile_n use_v the_o mediation_n of_o other_o to_o god_n as_o man_n use_v to_o come_v to_o prince_n by_o tribune_n and_o hushier_v so_o likewise_o do_v the_o papist_n they_o give_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n to_o creature_n honorem_fw-la nominis_fw-la dei_fw-la deferunt_fw-la creaturae_fw-la so_o likewise_o do_v papist_n likewise_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n be_v a_o mere_a invention_n of_o pagan_n in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n c._n 14._o they_o be_v call_v idol_n of_o the_o nation_n this_o be_v plain_o declare_v by_o athanasius_n in_o his_o treatise_n against_o idolatry_n and_o cyprian_a de_fw-fr idolorum_fw-la vanitate_fw-la ambrose_n in_o psal_n 118._o ser_n 10._o say_v gentile_n do_v worship_v wood_n because_o they_o think_v it_o to_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god_n gentes_fw-la lignum_fw-la adorant_fw-la quia_fw-la dei_fw-la imaginem_fw-la putant_fw-la so_o likewise_o papist_n worship_v image_n not_o because_o of_o the_o matter_n but_o because_o they_o represent_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n he_o say_v the_o gentile_n change_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n into_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n so_o that_o the_o form_n of_o a_o corruptible_a man_n be_v by_o they_o call_v god_n and_o so_o likewise_o papist_n call_v the_o image_n of_o god_n god_n and_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n christ_n and_o change_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o incorruptible_a god_n into_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n at_o rome_n the_o temple_n of_o romulus_n and_o remus_n be_v now_o turn_v into_o the_o church_n of_o s._n cosmas_n and_o damianus_n the_o temple_n of_o faunus_n into_o the_o church_n of_o s._n stephen_n and_o at_o loreto_n the_o church_n of_o juno_n cupra_n into_o the_o chapel_n of_o our_o lady_n of_o loreto_n gregory_n in_o his_o dialogue_n lib._n 2._o c._n 8._o show_v that_o benet_n in_o stead_n of_o apollo_n substitute_v s._n martin_n in_o the_o castle_n of_o cassinum_n and_o that_o he_o erect_v a_o altar_n to_o s._n john_n in_o the_o place_n where_o a_o altar_n stand_v dedicate_v to_o apollo_n nay_o so_o little_a difference_n there_o be_v between_o paganism_n and_o popery_n that_o the_o image_n of_o inpiter_n in_o brass_n do_v now_o serve_v in_o s._n peter_n church_n at_o rome_n for_o the_o
assumptae_fw-la praecepit_fw-la enim_fw-la dominus_fw-la mosi_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o again_o noster_fw-la pontifex_fw-la plura_fw-la quàm_fw-la octo_fw-la induit_fw-la vestimenta_fw-la quamuis_fw-la aaron_n non_fw-la nisi_fw-la octo_fw-la habuisse_fw-la legatur_fw-la quibus_fw-la moderna_fw-la succedunt_fw-la from_o thence_o also_o the_o masspriest_n have_v borrow_v their_o altar_n sacrifice_n and_o priesthood_n for_o in_o the_o gospel_n we_o find_v none_o of_o these_o thing_n institute_v as_o they_o use_v they_o alexander_n the_o first_o do_v institute_v the_o consecration_n of_o holy_a water_n in_o imitation_n of_o the_o aspersion_n of_o the_o ash_n of_o the_o red_a cow_n the_o burn_a of_o incense_n by_o durand_n rat_n lib._n 4._o c._n 8._o be_v draw_v from_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o law_n and_o out_o of_o the_o 30._o chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la the_o salutation_n dominus_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la be_v borrow_v from_o boos_n ruth_n 2._o who_o with_o like_a word_n salute_v his_o reaper_n as_o if_o the_o mass_n be_v only_o to_o be_v say_v in_o harvest_n time_n and_o among_o mower_n and_o reaper_n the_o feast_n institute_v in_o the_o dedication_n of_o church_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o first_o of_o maccabee_n c._n 4._o because_o the_o jew_n do_v keep_v holy_a the_o day_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n durand_n rat_n divin_v lib._n 6._o c._n 6._o prove_v the_o four_o ember_n fast_n by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o jew_n nam_fw-la &_o judaei_n say_v he_o quater_fw-la in_o anno_fw-la ieiunabant_fw-la and_o he_o allege_v a_o brave_a reason_n for_o it_o viz._n for_o that_o the_o four_o element_n of_o the_o body_n be_v corrupt_v by_o these_o four_o fast_n may_v be_v purge_v in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o missale_n the_o papist_n show_v how_o the_o paschale_n lamb_n be_v to_o be_v consecrate_v which_o be_v be_v a_o ceremony_n savour_v of_o the_o relic_n of_o the_o leviticall_a law_n not_o yet_o sufficient_o purge_v out_o of_o popery_n the_o heave_n and_o lift_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n the_o masspriest_n borrow_v from_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n wherein_o a_o heave_n offer_v be_v prescribe_v and_o from_o thence_o also_o come_v the_o swing_a of_o the_o chalice_n about_o the_o priest_n head_n garret_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o auerroes_n and_o other_o rabbin_n go_v about_o to_o prove_v the_o popish_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n robert_n parson_n in_o his_o book_n of_o 3._o conversion_n endevour_v to_o prove_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o corrupt_a custom_n of_o the_o jew_n final_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o show_v that_o many_o other_o popish_a cymbale_n and_o ceremony_n be_v draw_v partly_o from_o the_o gentile_n and_o partly_o from_o the_o jew_n but_o by_o this_o which_o i_o have_v already_o bring_v it_o appear_v sufficient_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v either_o gross_o heathenish_a or_o ceremonious_o jewish_a or_o at_o the_o least_o corrupt_o and_o stiff_o heretical_a chap._n xxvi_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v full_a of_o contradiction_n and_o contrary_a opinion_n as_o truth_n be_v always_o consonant_a to_o itself_o so_o in_o falsehood_n there_o be_v much_o jar_a and_o contradiction_n to_o specify_v this_o matter_n by_o example_n we_o need_v to_o seek_v no_o further_o then_o in_o the_o corrupt_a and_o false_a religion_n and_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n for_o notwithstanding_o their_o crack_n and_o brag_n of_o unity_n hardly_o shall_v you_o name_v any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n wherein_o the_o chief_a founder_n and_o defender_n of_o popery_n hold_v not_o singular_a opinion_n and_o vary_v one_o from_o another_o nay_o whosoever_o have_v leisure_n to_o peruse_v the_o whole_a corpse_n of_o their_o doctrine_n shall_v find_v that_o it_o contain_v strange_a piece_n and_o point_n one_o contradict_v another_o in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o trinity_n wherein_o we_o agree_v with_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n they_o be_v so_o curious_a and_o contentious_a that_o they_o agree_v not_o almost_o in_o any_o point_n among_o themselves_o first_o they_o contend_v about_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o divine_a attribute_n whether_o it_o be_v real_a or_o formal_a or_o imaginary_a or_o rationis_fw-la dionysius_n richel_n in_o lib._n 1._o send_v do_v 2._o say_v that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a difficulty_n of_o divine_n and_o that_o about_o it_o there_o be_v great_a dissension_n and_o contention_n he_o tell_v further_o how_o aegidius_n do_v herein_o lance_n thomas_n and_o other_o run_v upon_o both_o aegidius_n in_o lib._n 1._o sentent_fw-fr do_v 2._o will_v have_v the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n distinguish_v by_o a_o certeive_v thing_n in_o one_o that_o be_v not_o in_o another_o which_o displease_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o consort_n most_o of_o the_o schoolman_n deny_v the_o example_n and_o similitude_n of_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n lib._n send_v 1._o do_v 3._o bring_v to_o illustrate_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o essence_n &_o trinity_n of_o the_o person_n and_o that_o which_o one_o affirm_v another_o mislike_v bonaventure_n say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n other_o say_v contrary_a the_o scotiste_n lib._n 1._o send_v do_v 5._o inveigh_v against_o henricus_fw-la de_fw-la gandavo_fw-la for_o his_o singular_a opinion_n about_o the_o eternal_a generation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n aegidius_n hold_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o beget_v another_o son_n which_o displease_v thomas_n and_o bonaventure_n and_o be_v very_o strange_a divinity_n thomas_n aquinas_n 1._o q._n 32._o art_n 4._o hold_v that_o doctor_n may_v hold_v contrary_a opinion_n cire_fw-la a_o notiones_fw-la in_o divinis_fw-la he_o teach_v also_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v more_o principal_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n then_o from_o the_o son_n which_o other_o mislike_v if_o then_o they_o agree_v not_o about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n what_o little_a hope_n can_v we_o conceive_v that_o they_o will_v better_o accord_v in_o other_o matter_n durand_n deni_v theology_n to_o be_v scientia_fw-la thomas_n and_o richard_n hold_v that_o it_o be_v about_o the_o word_n uti_fw-la and_o frui_fw-la there_o be_v great_a variety_n of_o opinion_n some_o dissent_v from_o their_o master_n other_o one_o from_o another_o as_o their_o dispute_n in_o 1._o send_v do_v 1._o do_v testify_v pighius_fw-la lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr eccles_n hierach_n c._n 2._o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v not_o above_o our_o faith_n but_o subject_a unto_o it_o stapleton_n lib._n doct_n princip_n 12._o c._n 15._o teach_v that_o the_o church_n and_o scripture_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n eckius_fw-la in_o enchirid_a loc_fw-la come_v c._n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la determine_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o authentical_a without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n bellarmine_n think_v best_o to_o pass_v over_o this_o question_n without_o resolution_n nicholas_n lyra_n hugo_n de_fw-fr s._n victore_fw-la dionysius_n carthusianus_n hugo_n cardinalis_fw-la thomas_n de_fw-fr vio_n and_o sixtus_n senensis_n lib._n 1._o biblioth_n s._n reject_v the_o last_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o hester_n as_o not_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o most_o popish_a doctor_n of_o late_a time_n hold_v they_o to_o be_v canonical_a john_n driedo_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr scripture_n &_o ecclesiast_fw-la dogm_n deni_v the_o book_n of_o baruch_n to_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la and_o most_o of_o his_o sellowe_n be_v of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n caietan_n and_o erasmus_n in_o their_o commentary_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n of_o james_n jude_n the_o second_o of_o peter_n and_o the_o 2._o and_o the_o three_o of_o john_n do_v dissent_n from_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o fellow_n and_o that_o partly_o concern_v the_o author_n and_o partly_o concern_v the_o authority_n of_o those_o epistle_n james_n bishop_n of_o christopolis_n in_o praefat_fw-la in_o psal_n and_o canus_n lib._n 2._o loc_fw-la theolog_fw-la c._n 13._o affirm_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v deprave_a and_o corrupt_v the_o original_a text_n of_o the_o old_a restament_n a_o opinion_n false_a &_o blasphemous_a &_o therefore_o contradict_v by_o bellar._n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la and_o by_o diverse_a of_o his_o consort_n sancte_v pagnmus_n in_o praefat._n interpret_v suae_fw-la biblior_fw-la and_o paulus_n bishop_n of_o foro_n sempronio_n lib._n 2._o c._n 1._o de_fw-fr die_v passionis_fw-la domini_fw-la deny_v that_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v make_v by_o hierome_n austen_n of_o eugubium_n and_o picus_n mirandula_n hold_v contrary_a bellarmine_n and_o d●sedo_n say_v that_o it_o be_v part_v his_o and_o part_v other_o alexander_n hales_n and_o durand_n hold_v that_o the_o divine_a attribute_n be_v not_o distinguish_v but_o in_o respect_n unto_o creature_n henricus_n and_o albertus_n
in_o 1._o send_v do_v 2._o hold_v contrary_a richardus_fw-la in_o 1._o send_v do_v 3._o hold_v that_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n may_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o natural_a reason_n scotus_n maronis_n and_o thomas_n affirm_v the_o contrary_n about_o the_o faculty_n of_o the_o soul_n call_v potentiae_fw-la the_o schoolman_n be_v divide_v into_o three_o sect_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o their_o dispute_n lib._n 1._o send_v do_v 3._o some_o hold_n they_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o soul_n other_o that_o they_o be_v accident_n the_o three_o that_o they_o be_v between_o substance_n and_o accident_n abbot_n joachim_n and_o richard_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la teach_v that_o the_o divine_a essence_n might_n generare_fw-la &_o gigni_fw-la the_o contrary_a be_v teach_v by_o peter_n lombard_n and_o his_o follower_n peter_n lombard_n lib._n send_v 1._o do_v 17._o teach_v that_o charity_n wherewith_o we_o love_v god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n create_v but_o now_o most_o of_o his_o follower_n in_o this_o point_n forsake_v he_o in_o the_o 24._o do_v of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o sentence_n peter_n lombard_n say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o number_n speak_v of_o god_n be_v speak_v only_o relature_o and_o that_o the_o word_n trinity_n impli_v nothing_o positive_o but_o only_o privative_o which_o because_o it_o overthrow_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n be_v almost_o general_o contradict_v by_o his_o follower_n in_o the_o 44._o distinction_n of_o the_o same_o book_n he_o say_v that_o god_n can_v always_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o can_v ever_o do_v and_o that_o he_o will_v whatsoever_o he_o will_v at_o any_o time_n and_o know_v whatsoever_o he_o know_v at_o any_o time_n but_o his_o disciple_n hold_v direct_a contrary_n thomas_n p._n 1._o q._n 46._o art_n 2._o hold_v that_o the_o world_n or_o at_o the_o lest_o some_o creature_n may_v have_v be_v from_o everlasting_a so_o likewise_o hold_v bonaventure_n and_o some_o other_o richardus_fw-la maintain_v the_o opposite_a opinion_n and_o that_o right_o for_o that_o the_o other_o savour_v of_o arianisme_n the_o master_n of_o sentence_n in_o 4._o do_v 1._o and_o gabriel_n and_o vega_n lib._n 7._o pro_fw-la conc._n trid._n c._n 13._o hold_v that_o not_o only_a substance_n but_o accident_n also_o be_v create_v alexander_n hales_n q._n 9_o m._n 6._o &_o q._n 10._o m._n 1._o and_o thomas_n p._n 1._o q._n 45._o art_n 4._o affirm_v that_o only_a substance_n be_v create_v about_o this_o question_n a_o omnium_fw-la aeviternorum_fw-la sit_fw-la unum_fw-la aewm_fw-la vel_fw-la multiplex_fw-la there_o be_v 5._o different_a opinion_n the_o first_o of_o scotus_n the_o second_o of_o thomas_n the_o three_o of_o durand_n the_o four_o of_o henricus_n the_o five_o of_o bonaventure_n likewise_o about_o this_o question_n quae_fw-la sit_fw-la ratio_fw-la formalis_fw-la cur_n angelus_n sit_v in_o loco_fw-la there_o be_v five_o opinion_n all_o repugnant_a one_o to_o another_o thomas_n and_o richardus_fw-la do_v affirm_v that_o two_o angel_n can_v be_v in_o one_o place_n together_o scotus_n occam_n and_o gabriel_n hold_v the_o contrary_n thomas_n hold_v that_o angel_n have_v not_o intellectum_fw-la agentem_fw-la &_o possibilem_fw-la scotus_n do_v direct_o contradict_v he_o scotus_n and_o gabriel_n teach_v that_o both_o devil_n and_o good_a angel_n do_v understand_v natural_o both_o our_o thought_n and_o the_o thought_n one_o of_o another_o but_o to_o thomas_n p._n 1._o q._n 57_o art_n 4._o this_o seem_v absurd_a antisiodorensis_n lib._n 2._o sum_n say_v that_o christ_n have_v angelum_fw-la custodem_fw-la other_o schoolman_n deny_v it_o scotus_n in_o 2._o scent_n do_v 1._o hold_v that_o the_o soul_n and_o a_o angel_n do_v not_o differ_v as_o two_o diverse_a kind_n other_o teach_v contrary_a some_o doctor_n hold_v that_o angel_n consist_v of_o form_n only_o other_o hold_v contrary_a as_o appear_v by_o their_o dispute_n in_o 2._o scent_n do_v 3._o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a act._n 5._o determine_v that_o angel_n &_o soul_n be_v corporal_a nemo_fw-la dixerit_fw-la say_v the_o council_n vel_fw-la angelos_fw-la vel_fw-la daemon_n velanimas_fw-la incorporeas_fw-la but_o this_o opinion_n will_v not_o now_o be_v believe_v of_o any_o learned_a papist_n why_o then_o shall_v they_o rather_o believe_v that_o synod_n in_o the_o article_n of_o worship_n of_o image_n than_o in_o this_o scotus_n say_v that_o the_o will_n be_v the_o only_a subject_n of_o sin_n thomas_n deni_v it_o concern_v the_o place_n of_o paradise_n there_o be_v three_o different_a opinion_n some_o hold_n that_o it_o reach_v to_o the_o circle_n of_o the_o moon_n thomas_n in_o 2._o do_v 17._o and_o bonaventure_n do_v place_n it_o upon_o a_o high_a mountain_n they_o know_v not_o where_o other_o place_v it_o in_o the_o east_n concern_v the_o nature_n of_o free_a will_n there_o be_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o schoolman_n and_o other_o as_o josephus_n angle_n in_o lib._n 2._o scent_n do_v 24._o and_o 25._o show_v particular_o richardus_fw-la hold_v that_o freewill_n can_v be_v change_v by_o god_n other_o for_o the_o most_o part_n hold_v the_o contrary_n thomas_n bonaventure_n and_o setus_fw-la hold_n that_o grace_n be_v not_o a_o quality_n infuse_v but_o a_o quality_n inherent_a in_o the_o soul_n alexander_n hales_n and_o scotus_n hold_v that_o it_o be_v a_o quality_n infuse_v josephus_n angle_n in_o lib._n 2._o scent_n do_v 26._o rehearse_v three_o several_a opinion_n of_o schooledoctor_n about_o the_o division_n of_o grace_n in_o gratiam_fw-la operantem_fw-la &_o cooperantem_fw-la whereby_o it_o may_v evident_o appear_v that_o papist_n in_o talk_v of_o grace_n go_v about_o to_o shut_v out_o god_n grace_n most_o schoolman_n and_o other_o affirm_v that_o adam_n and_o eve_n believe_v not_o god_n word_n concern_v the_o forbid_a fruit_n bellarmine_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr amiss_o great_a c._n 6._o say_v they_o believe_v in_o the_o same_o book_n c._n 9_o bellarmine_n say_v adam_n offence_n be_v great_a than_o that_o of_o eve_n contrary_a both_o to_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o to_o schoolman_n lib._n 5._o the_o amiss_o great_a c._n 17._o he_o show_v great_a diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o his_o schoolman_n &_o fellow_n about_o orginall_a sin_n and_o himself_o dissent_v from_o all_o about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o original_a sin_n or_o not_o there_o have_v be_v not_o only_a contradiction_n but_o also_o tragical_a stir_n and_o contention_n certain_a scholar_n of_o aquinas_n believe_v and_o teach_v that_o no_o man_n be_v of_o year_n of_o discretion_n can_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o absolute_a power_n of_o god_n without_o the_o act_n and_o concurrence_n of_o free_a will_n scotus_n vega_n and_o caietan_n hold_v contrary_a both_o their_o opinion_n be_v touch_v by_o josephus_n angle_n in_o 2._o scent_n do_v 27._o richardus_fw-la in_o 2._o do_v 27._o art_n 2._o q._n 1._o scotia_n in_o 1._o do_v 17._o q._n 1._o art_n 1._o and_o durand_n in_o 1._o do_v 17._o q._n 2._o and_o other_o hold_z that_o a_o man_n may_v merit_v the_o first_o grace_n do_v congruo_fw-la gregorius_n arimineusis_n in_o 2._o do_v 26._o lyra_n in_o joan._n 1._o waldensis_n and_o other_o deny_v it_o sotus_n lib._n 2._o the_o not_o &_o great_a c._n 4._o say_v that_o the_o former_a opinion_n be_v near_o to_o peligiamsine_n gregorius_n ariminensis_n and_o capreolus_n in_o 2._o do_v 27._o q._n 1._o hold_v that_o no_o man_n without_o the_o illustration_n of_o god_n special_a grace_n can_v attain_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o any_o moral_a truth_n but_o thomas_n and_o scotus_n in_o 2._o do_v 27._o do_v hold_v contrary_a durand_n place_v original_a sin_n in_o the_o carnal_a appetite_n thomas_n place_v it_o in_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o soul_n scotus_n differ_v from_o both_o and_o place_v it_o in_o the_o will_n of_o man_n josephus_n angle_n in_o 2._o do_v 27._o rehearse_v three_o several_a opinion_n about_o this_o question_n whether_o a_o sin_n of_o omission_n may_v be_v commit_v without_o a_o positive_a act_n the_o same_o man_n reckon_v 5._o different_a opinion_n about_o the_o difference_n of_o mortal_a and_o venial_a sin_n and_o three_o opinion_n concern_v this_o question_n what_o be_v sin_n of_o malice_n catharin_n and_o caietan_n do_v strive_v about_o faith_n of_o infant_n and_o diverse_a other_o matter_n and_o great_a will_v the_o contention_n have_v be_v if_o the_o matter_n have_v not_o be_v take_v up_o or_o at_o least_o silence_n command_v by_o the_o pope_n bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr pontiff_a rom._n c._n 12._o say_v that_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n be_v nothing_o but_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n the_o master_n of_o sentence_n and_o caietan_n the_o just_a &_o auth_v pontiff_n rom._n hold_v that_o they_o contain_v somewhat_o more_o pighius_fw-la lib._n 4._o hierarch_n eccles_n c._n 8._o
enemy_n charitas_fw-la enim_fw-la extendi_fw-la debet_fw-la etiam_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la inimicos_fw-la the_o school_n distinction_n be_v as_o absurd_a as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n they_o distinguish_v between_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_fw-la and_o doulia_fw-la as_o if_o that_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n this_o to_o creature_n but_o the_o use_n of_o these_o greek_a word_n admit_v no_o such_o distinction_n beside_o that_o distinguish_a term_n they_o give_v in_o effect_n the_o honour_n of_o god_n to_o creature_n they_o say_v the_o first_o justice_n be_v without_o work_n the_o second_o be_v of_o work_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v but_o of_o one_o sort_n of_o justice_n whereby_o christian_n be_v to_o be_v justify_v before_o god_n they_o speak_v strange_o of_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la &_o opus_fw-la operans_fw-la but_o scripture_n acknowledge_v no_o such_o inkepot_n term_n nor_o doctrine_n the_o distinction_n of_o merit_n of_o congruity_n and_o condignity_n be_v as_o absurd_a as_o the_o rest_n for_o how_o can_v a_o man_n that_o be_v unworthy_a of_o favour_n be_v say_v to_o merit_v with_o the_o sprinkle_n of_o holy_a water_n they_o think_v to_o drive_v away_o devil_n but_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o think_v that_o they_o be_v scar_v with_o water_n in_o the_o church_n service_n they_o use_v a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v but_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o aquin._n in_o 1._o cor._n 14._o confess_v that_o be_v count_v madness_n they_o pray_v also_o like_o parrot_n and_o know_v not_o what_o they_o say_v which_o be_v foolish_a and_o fruitless_a in_o consecrate_v of_o church_n they_o write_v the_o greek_a alphabet_n upon_o the_o pavement_n but_o what_o be_v more_o foolish_a than_o to_o teach_v stone_n the_o alphabet_n they_o do_v also_o grease_v the_o altar_n and_o set_v up_o light_n before_o cross_n that_o every_o simple_a soul_n may_v see_v their_o soolery_n and_o when_o their_o disciple_n lie_v a_o die_a than_o they_o put_v light_a in_o their_o hand_n and_o grease_v their_o eye_n but_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o show_v light_n to_o dead_a man_n or_o to_o think_v that_o man_n can_v see_v better_a have_v oil_n in_o their_o eye_n what_o then_o remain_v but_o that_o we_o beseech_v god_n to_o open_v the_o eye_n of_o papist_n that_o they_o may_v in_o the_o end_n see_v the_o foolery_n and_o absurdity_n of_o that_o superstitious_a religion_n whereto_o now_o they_o be_v so_o much_o addict_v chap._n xxviii_o that_o popish_a religion_n do_v keep_v christian_n in_o blindness_n and_o ignorance_n of_o god_n and_o godliness_n if_o none_o but_o fool_n despise_v wisdom_n and_o instruction_n as_o the_o wiseman_n proverb_n 1._o teach_v we_o then_o can_v we_o think_v the_o papist_n wise_a that_o not_o only_a delight_n in_o ignorance_n but_o also_o debar_v lay-man_n from_o all_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o instruction_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o true_a piety_n that_o they_o delight_v in_o ignorance_n it_o appear_v in_o that_o they_o commend_v the_o collier_n faith_n that_o can_v answer_n the_o devil_n nothing_o but_o that_o he_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v albeit_o he_o know_v not_o what_o it_o be_v they_o do_v also_o teach_v their_o follower_n that_o for_o simple_a people_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n implicit_a for_o so_o say_v linwood_n in_o gloss_n in_o c._n ignorantia_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trinit_fw-la thomas_n aquinas_n 2.2_o q._n 2._o art_n 6._o compare_v god_n people_n to_o ass_n and_o their_o teacher_n to_o ox_n &_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o adhere_v to_o their_o superior_n and_o although_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n explicit_a yet_o sylvester_n in_o summa_fw-la in_o verb._n fides_fw-la expound_v it_o that_o they_o be_v to_o believe_v these_o article_n explicitè_fw-fr as_o far_o as_o they_o direct_v we_o to_o the_o last_o end_n in_o 2.2_o q._n 82._o art_n 3._o thomas_n say_v that_o the_o woman_n and_o simple_a people_n be_v most_o devout_a and_o m._n cole_n a_o man_n not_o light_o account_v of_o among_o the_o papist_n say_v open_o that_o ignorance_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o devotion_n that_o they_o deprine_n lay-man_n of_o all_o ordinary_a mean_n of_o instruction_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o appear_v first_o for_o that_o they_o seldom_o permit_v scripture_n translate_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n to_o be_v read_v by_o they_o but_o scripture_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o 2._o tim._n 3._o be_v profitable_a to_o instruct_v second_o they_o express_o forbid_v they_o to_o be_v read_v public_o in_o the_o church_n their_o service_n also_o and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o tongue_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n three_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v lay-man_n to_o dispute_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o be_v excommunicate_a if_o they_o do_v it_o as_o navarrus_n in_o enchirid_a in_o 1._o precept_n c._n 11._o declare_v four_o their_o preacher_n seldom_o teach_v the_o people_n and_o when_o they_o do_v it_o yet_o as_o dante_n canto_n 29._o say_v they_o preach_v their_o own_o invention_n and_o tell_v idle_a tale_n without_o edification_n cornelius_z agrippa_z de_fw-fr vanit_fw-la scient_a c._n de_fw-fr theolog_fw-la say_v that_o for_o the_o gospel_n and_o god_n word_n they_o preach_v mere_a toy_n and_o humane_a invention_n pro_fw-la evangelijs_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la meras_fw-la nugas_fw-la &_o humana_fw-la verba_fw-la crepant_fw-la praedicantes_fw-la evangelium_fw-la adulterantes_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la five_o if_o either_o any_o preach_v the_o truth_n sincere_o or_o else_o speak_v against_o the_o impiety_n and_o heresy_n of_o popery_n then_o be_v he_o either_o force_v to_o abjure_v or_o else_o adjudge_v to_o the_o fire_n final_o all_o book_n of_o religion_n in_o vulgar_a tongue_n whereby_o christian_n may_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v suppress_v and_o by_o great_a penalty_n forbid_v this_o we_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o both_o priest_n and_o people_n be_v most_o ignorant_a of_o matter_n of_o faith_n where_o popery_n be_v profess_v and_o first_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o pope_n alphonsus_n à_fw-fr castro_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la haeres_fw-la say_v that_o diverse_a pope_n have_v be_v utterlie_o unlearned_a constat_fw-la plures_fw-la papas_n adeo_fw-la illiteratos_fw-la esse_fw-la ut_fw-la grammaticam_fw-la penitus_fw-la ignorent_fw-la this_o sentence_n now_o in_o late_a edition_n they_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v raze_v out_o of_o the_o book_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v forget_v that_o one_o pope_n for_o fiat_fw-la say_fw-la siatur_fw-la laziardus_fw-la epit_fw-la c._n 183._o speak_v of_o gregory_n the_o six_o say_v he_o cause_v another_o to_o be_v consecrate_v with_o he_o for_o say_v of_o mass_n see_v he_o be_v rude_a and_o ignorant_a of_o letter_n ut_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la alium_fw-la secum_fw-la consecrari_fw-la fecit_fw-la cum_fw-la esset_fw-la rudis_fw-la literarum_fw-la felin_n c._n si_fw-la quando_fw-la de_fw-fr rescriptis_fw-la say_v the_o pope_n can_v be_v depose_v for_o want_n of_o learning_n papa_n propter_fw-la defectum_fw-la literaturae_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la deponi_fw-la how_o simple_a clerk_n they_o be_v it_o appear_v for_o that_o as_o auentinus_n testify_v annal_a lib._n 3._o pope_n zachary_n condemn_v virgilius_n a_o bishop_n of_o germany_n as_o a_o heretic_n for_o say_v there_o be_v antipode_n paul_n the_o second_o as_o platina_n testify_v determine_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n that_o name_v the_o word_n academy_n and_o be_v a_o enemy_n of_o learning_n john_n peccham_n in_o the_o provincial_a constitution_n beginning_n ignorantia_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la think_v it_o sufficient_a for_o priest_n either_o by_o themselves_o or_o by_o other_o once_o every_o quarter_n to_o expound_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o two_o commandment_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o seven_o work_n of_o mercy_n the_o seven_o deadly_a sin_n the_o seven_o principal_a virtue_n and_o seven_o sacrament_n and_o that_o without_o any_o curiosity_n platina_n complain_v of_o the_o ignorance_n of_o priest_n of_o his_o time_n cry_v out_o quanta_fw-la ignoratio_fw-la cum_fw-la suispsius_fw-la tum_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la christiana_n what_o ignorance_n say_v he_o be_v in_o they_o as_o well_o of_o themselves_o as_o of_o christian_a doctrine_n the_o two_o point_n of_o a_o bishop_n mitre_n as_o durand_n in_o his_o rational_a teach_v signify_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n but_o lois_fw-fr mersilius_fw-la a_o augustinian_a friar_n be_v ask_v what_o the_o two_o stroppe_n of_o the_o mitre_n that_o hang_v on_o the_o bishop_n back_o do_v mean_a say_v they_o signify_v that_o he_o neither_o understand_v the_o old_a nor_o new_a testament_n and_o this_o be_v the_o case_n of_o most_o popish_a prelate_n matthew_z paris_z in_o willielmo_n conquaest_n say_v that_o clerk_n be_v then_o so_o unlearned_a that_o such_o as_o understand_v
massacre_n and_o cruel_a execution_n do_v by_o the_o papist_n of_o late_a year_n upon_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n have_v proceed_v from_o no_o other_o fountain_n then_o from_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o he_o be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o apocalyps_n 12._o we_o read_v that_o the_o great_a red_a dragon_n that_o be_v the_o devil_n persecute_v the_o woman_n which_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o cause_v she_o to_o fly_v into_o the_o wilderness_n from_o the_o same_o fountain_n also_o do_v issue_n all_o the_o forgery_n lie_n and_o calumniation_n of_o papist_n whereby_o they_o have_v go_v about_o to_o suppress_v the_o truth_n for_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o father_n of_o lie_n and_o from_o their_o father_n the_o devil_n the_o lie_a friar_n and_o masspriest_n have_v learn_v their_o lie_a devise_n who_o then_o be_v of_o god_n must_v needs_o hate_v this_o religion_n that_o be_v partly_o invent_v and_o partly_o maintain_v by_o the_o devil_n chap._n xxxiii_o that_o papist_n can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o religion_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n we_o be_v assure_v for_o the_o article_n thereof_o be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o confess_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o time_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o popery_n for_o neither_o do_v christ_n deliver_v it_o nor_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n teach_v it_o nor_o be_v the_o same_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o confess_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o time_n but_o depend_v partly_o upon_o tradition_n not_o write_v and_o partly_o upon_o the_o pope_n determination_n and_o partly_o upon_o the_o opinion_n of_o schoolman_n and_o canoniste_n and_o the_o monk_n and_o friar_n now_o what_o assurance_n i_o pray_v you_o can_v any_o papist_n have_v of_o these_o doctrine_n first_o no_o man_n yet_o can_v ever_o tell_v what_o these_o tradition_n be_v which_o the_o priest_n of_o trent_n will_v make_v equal_a to_o scripture_n bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la talk_v at_o random_n but_o he_o dare_v not_o come_v to_o particular_n nor_o direct_o express_v they_o second_o they_o dare_v not_o define_v where_o these_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v find_v if_o they_o say_v in_o the_o decretales_fw-la then_o all_o future_a tradition_n be_v cut_v off_o and_o former_a tradition_n found_v on_o the_o pope_n opinion_n if_o they_o say_v in_o the_o legend_n their_o tradition_n will_v prove_v lie_n and_o foolery_n for_o such_o be_v the_o legend_n if_o they_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o pure_a fountain_n of_o tradition_n of_o caesar_n baronius_n as_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o five_o do_v they_o will_v be_v laugh_v at_o that_o be_v not_o advise_v of_o their_o ground_n before_o the_o time_n of_o this_o babble_n and_o confuse_a cardinal_n three_o they_o can_v show_v why_o some_o tradition_n shall_v be_v observe_v and_o other_o not_z but_o if_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v recein_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o holy_a scripture_n than_o may_v none_o be_v abolish_v as_o for_o the_o determination_n of_o pope_n they_o can_v allege_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v true_a if_o they_o bring_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n they_o concern_v they_o nothing_o that_o be_v so_o unlike_a to_o peter_n if_o they_o bring_v christ_n promise_n to_o his_o church_n they_o concern_v they_o much_o less_o for_o they_o be_v rather_o enemy_n than_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o be_v they_o member_n yet_o what_o man_n be_v privilege_v so_o that_o he_o can_v err_v but_o those_o which_o for_o write_v of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v lead_v into_o all_o truth_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n final_o there_o be_v such_o contention_n betwixt_o the_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n and_o such_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o the_o several_a doctor_n of_o both_o the_o side_n that_o it_o be_v bar_v to_o say_v whether_o any_o of_o they_o teach_v true_o and_o most_o certain_a that_o many_o of_o they_o teach_v false_o nay_o scarce_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o schoolman_n wherein_o they_o dissent_v not_o one_o from_o another_o now_o if_o they_o say_v their_o faith_n be_v found_v not_o only_o upon_o the_o pope_n determination_n and_o apostolic_a tradition_n but_o also_o upon_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o hold_v as_o they_o do_v this_o shall_v not_o any_o whit_n relieve_v they_o for_o first_o they_o can_v assure_v themselves_o that_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v more_o true_a than_o the_o original_a text_n in_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a for_o all_o the_o father_n with_o one_o consent_n prefer_v the_o original_a fountain_n before_o all_o version_n second_o they_o must_v needs_o stand_v in_o doubt_n which_o be_v the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n for_o if_o they_o allow_v that_o which_o be_v set_v out_o by_o clement_n the_o 8._o then_o can_v they_o allow_v of_o that_o which_o be_v set_v out_o by_o sixtus_n quintus_n the_o one_o so_o much_o differ_v from_o the_o other_o nor_o if_o they_o approve_v this_o can_v they_o follow_v that_o three_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n because_o god_n speak_v in_o they_o nor_o the_o tradition_n because_o they_o be_v god_n word_n as_o they_o hold_v but_o because_o the_o church_n do_v tell_v we_o which_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o consign_v they_o unto_o we_o and_o do_v further_a deliver_v unto_o we_o these_o tradition_n not_o write_v for_o this_o be_v stapletons_n opinion_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr doctrinalibus_fw-la princip_n and_o authorit_n ecclesiast_fw-la defence_n and_o be_v confess_v of_o most_o papist_n but_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o do_v so_o depend_v upon_o the_o church_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v assure_v of_o either_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n then_o do_v the_o faith_n of_o papist_n rest_v upon_o the_o pope_n who_o as_o they_o say_v be_v chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o will_v bring_v the_o papist_n to_o great_a uncertainty_n for_o who_o be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o a_o blind_a pope_n can_v well_o judge_v of_o colour_n or_o so_o senseless_a as_o not_o to_o believe_v god_n word_n without_o the_o pope_n warrant_n four_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n because_o they_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o because_o they_o be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o pope_n thomas_n aquinas_n 2.2.9.1_o art_n 10._o say_v that_o the_o order_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n &_o that_o athanasius_n his_o creed_n be_v receive_v because_o it_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o by_o other_o be_v deliver_v in_o more_o gross_a term_n stapleton_n in_o his_o doctrinal_a principle_n say_v that_o the_o last_o resolution_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o pope_n desinitive_a sentence_n and_o bellarmine_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 4._o go_v about_o to_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n to_o who_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o last_o resolution_n of_o all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v but_o the_o papist_n can_v neither_o assure_v thomselue_n that_o he_o that_o sit_v at_o rome_n be_v true_a pope_n and_o s._n peter_n true_a successor_n nor_o that_o his_o determination_n be_v certain_a or_o true_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v s._n peter_n true_a successor_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o prove_v consider_v that_o he_o preach_v not_o as_o s._n peter_n do_v nor_o s._n peter_n wear_v a_o triple_a crown_n and_o command_v temporal_a prince_n as_o he_o do_v it_o be_v very_o hard_o also_o to_o know_v whether_o he_o be_v true_a pope_n or_o no_o after_o the_o common_a understanding_n of_o papist_n for_o unless_o he_o be_v baptize_v and_o true_o order_v and_o choose_v he_o be_v no_o true_a pope_n but_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o know_v whether_o he_o be_v baptize_v which_o depend_v upon_o the_o priest_n intention_n which_o be_v uncerteine_a and_o hide_a it_o be_v also_o more_o hard_a to_o understand_v whether_o he_o be_v true_o order_v or_o not_o for_o if_o he_o be_v not_o baptize_v then_o be_v he_o not_o capable_a of_o priesthood_n as_o innocentius_n say_v c._n ventens_fw-fr de_fw-fr presbytero_fw-la non_fw-la baptizato_fw-la and_o if_o he_o that_o order_v he_o have_v no_o intention_n to_o do_v it_o than_o receive_v he_o no_o order_n last_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n most_o difficult_a to_o know_v whether_o the_o pope_n be_v right_o choose_v or_o else_o by_o simony_n or_o violence_n or_o other_o mean_v intrude_v so_o it_o be_v always_o most_o
by_o frequent_a excommunication_n be_v grow_v contemptible_a he_o complain_v also_o of_o the_o multitude_n of_o irregularity_n add_v hereunto_o the_o greevance_n proceed_v of_o suspension_n and_o interditement_n and_o then_o the_o burden_n must_v needs_o seem_v more_o grievous_a five_o such_o as_o do_v not_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o sacrament_n jump_o with_o the_o romish_a church_n they_o pronounce_v heretic_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o chap._n ad_fw-la abolendam_fw-la de_fw-fr haereticis_fw-la they_o give_v they_o also_o over_o to_o the_o secular_a power_n to_o be_v put_v to_o death_n six_o they_o make_v king_n and_o prince_n their_o butcher_n and_o executioner_n sorce_v they_o by_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n to_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o christ_n lamb_n who_o they_o most_o wrongful_o have_v pronounce_v heretic_n seventh_o they_o burden_n their_o clergy_n &_o their_o religious_a order_n both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n with_o a_o vow_n of_o single_a life_n albeit_o they_o find_v themselves_o most_o unable_a to_o perform_v it_o they_o force_v also_o the_o monk_n friar_n and_o nun_n to_n observe_v monkish_a rule_n which_o be_v oftentimes_o full_a of_o foolery_n and_o stand_v for_o the_o most_o part_n upon_o external_a ceremony_n final_o like_a to_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n they_o have_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n infinite_a tradition_n and_o ceremony_n nay_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n do_v paragon_n and_o make_v equal_a unwritten_a tradition_n to_o god_n write_v word_n and_o yet_o no_o papist_n ever_o yet_o can_v tell_v what_o those_o tradition_n be_v or_o in_o what_o book_n they_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o baptism_n they_o use_v salt_n spittle_n blowing_n light_n and_o grease_v in_o the_o mass_n the_o priest_n turn_v heave_v skip_v swinge_v the_o chalice_n to_o and_o fro_o mop_v mow_v duck_v speak_v sometime_o high_a sometime_o low_o and_o make_v no_o end_n of_o ceremony_n the_o consecrate_v of_o salt_n holy-water_n oil_n paschal_n lamb_n new_a house_n new_a ship_n be_v not_o do_v without_o many_o ceremony_n in_o hallow_v and_o rehallow_v of_o church_n say_v of_o canonical_a hour_n and_o office_n many_o ceremony_n pass_v but_o few_o to_o purpose_n the_o bishop_n in_o consecrate_v a_o church_n walk_v round_o about_o it_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o entrance_n in_o and_o in_o the_o end_n abuse_v a_o versicle_n of_o a_o psalm_n say_v attollite_fw-la portas_fw-la principes_fw-la vestras_fw-la and_o enter_v make_v the_o greek_a and_o latin_a alphabet_n and_o set_v light_n before_o cross_n make_v on_o wall_n and_o grease_v stone_n the_o year_n of_o jubiley_n abound_v with_o ceremony_n the_o pope_n knock_v first_o at_o s._n peter_n church_n door_n with_o a_o golden_a hammer_n show_v that_o no_o man_n obtain_v indulgence_n but_o he_o must_v spend_v gold_n than_o the_o priest_n show_v their_o ware_n and_o ignorant_a people_n go_v about_o visit_v certain_a church_n and_o relic_n of_o which_o we_o never_o read_v word_n in_o the_o gospel_n or_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n the_o papist_n therefore_o be_v entangle_v with_o a_o miserable_a yoke_n of_o bondage_n and_o be_v utter_o ignorant_a of_o the_o liberty_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v make_v we_o free_a god_n open_v their_o eye_n that_o they_o may_v see_v and_o give_v they_o grace_n that_o they_o may_v feel_v their_o burden_n and_o shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o antichrist_n may_v in_o the_o end_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o submit_v themselves_o only_o to_o christ_n yoke_n that_o be_v easy_a and_o light_a chap._n xl._n that_o popish_a religion_n be_v very_o grievous_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o masspriest_n manifold_a tax_n and_o exaction_n it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o show_v how_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pole-shorne_a crew_n do_v aswell_o pole_n christian_n man_n purse_n as_o grieve_v their_o conscience_n wherein_o i_o need_v not_o to_o use_v any_o long_a discourse_n see_v the_o same_o be_v apparent_a not_o only_o by_o practice_n but_o also_o by_o confession_n of_o the_o papist_n themselves_o common_o they_o buy_v the_o papacy_n in_o gross_a and_o therefore_o no_o marvel_n if_o they_o sell_v it_o by_o retail_v vendit_fw-la alexander_n say_v one_o of_o alexander_n the_o sixth_o vendere_fw-la jure_fw-la potest_fw-la emerat_fw-la ille_fw-la prius_fw-la but_o this_o be_v not_o his_o fault_n alone_o benet_n the_o 9_o sell_v the_o papacy_n for_o 1500._o pound_n of_o gold_n to_o gregory_n the_o 6._o as_o beno_n testify_v benedictus_fw-la 9_o papatum_fw-la say_v he_o pro_fw-la libris_fw-la mille_fw-la quingentis_fw-la vendidit_fw-la gregorio_n 6._o and_o no_o man_n now_o obtain_v that_o place_n but_o for_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n and_o large_a promise_n as_o the_o discourse_n of_o diverse_a late_a conclave_n testify_v therefore_o no_o marvel_n if_o they_o seek_v money_n greedy_o both_o before_o and_o after_o they_o come_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o pope_n chair_n brigit_fw-la in_o her_o revelation_n say_v the_o pope_n have_v turn_v all_o god_n commandment_n into_o this_o one_o viz._n give_v money_n convertit_fw-la decem_fw-la praecepta_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la unum_fw-la da_fw-la pecuniam_fw-la for_o money_n they_o sell_v church_n priesthood_n altar_n mass_n crown_n fire_n incense_n prayer_n yea_o heaven_n and_o god_n himself_o venalia_fw-la nobis_fw-la say_v mantuan_n templa_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la altaria_fw-la sacra_fw-la coronae_fw-la ignis_fw-la thura_fw-la preces_fw-la caelum_fw-la est_fw-la venale_n deusque_fw-la fridericke_n the_o 2._o for_o one_o absolution_n pay_v to_o gregory_n the_o 9_o a_o hundred_o twenty_o five_o thousand_o ounce_n of_o gold_n as_o be_v record_v in_o the_o pontifical_a or_o 120._o thousand_o as_o naucler_n epitome_n rerum_fw-la german_n john_n of_o pineda_n and_o other_o do_v reckon_v josephus_n angle_n in_o 4._o sentent_fw-fr c._n de_fw-fr indulgentijs_fw-la signify_v that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n pai_v sometime_o to_o the_o pope_n a_o hundred_o thousand_o ducat_n for_o one_o indulgence_n leo_fw-la the_o 10._o give_v such_o a_o scandal_n by_o the_o sale_n of_o indulgence_n in_o germany_n that_o man_n begin_v to_o examine_v more_o narow_o these_o popish_a commodity_n and_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o the_o profit_n of_o this_o sale_n come_v to_o magdalene_n the_o pope_n honest_a sister_n boniface_n the_o nine_o as_o theodoric_n à_fw-la niem_fw-la testify_v lib._n 2._o the_o schism_n c._n 11._o sell_v benefice_n as_o he_o be_v hear_v mass_n in_o missarum_fw-la solennijs_fw-la benesicia_fw-la vendidit_fw-la mitre_a prelate_n sell_a imposition_n of_o hand_n ecclesiastical_a livinge_n church_n censure_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v reserve_v to_o their_o office_n as_o the_o german_n complain_v in_o their_o grievance_n theodoric_n trudo_n complain_v that_o christ_n sheepefolde_n be_v break_v down_o with_o hammer_n of_o silver_n malleus_fw-la argenti_fw-la consregit_fw-la ovilia_fw-la christi_fw-la the_o rascal_n masspriest_n sell_v mass_n dirge_n sacrament_n sacramental_a ceremony_n and_o other_o romish_a ware_n every_o man_n according_a to_o the_o faculty_n give_v he_o by_o the_o pope_n brigit_fw-la in_o her_o revelation_n bring_v in_o christ_n complain_v how_o priest_n deal_v worse_o in_o sell_v he_o than_o judas_n for_o that_o he_o sell_v he_o for_o money_n they_o for_o every_o commodity_n deteriores_fw-la sunt_fw-la juda_n qui_fw-la pro_fw-la solis_fw-la denarijs_fw-la i_o vendidit_fw-la illi_fw-la autem_fw-la pro_fw-la quovis_fw-la mercimonio_fw-la the_o papist_n themselves_o know_v that_o the_o masspriest_n and_o jebusite_n send_v from_o the_o pope_n into_o england_n live_v upon_o sale_n of_o their_o faculty_n of_o these_o pillage_n diverse_a have_v complain_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o yet_o we_o find_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v never_o abide_v any_o reformation_n matthew_z paris_z in_o henrico_n 3_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o rapine_n of_o one_o pope_n legate_n say_v he_o have_v extort_a more_o than_o be_v remain_v behind_o in_o england_n except_v the_o church_n ornament_n nec_fw-la remansit_fw-la eadem_fw-la hora_fw-la say_v he_o ut_fw-la veraciter_fw-la dicebatur_fw-la tantum_fw-la pecuniae_fw-la in_o anglia_fw-it exceptis_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la vasis_fw-la &_o ornamentis_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la quantum_fw-la à_fw-la regno_fw-la extorserat_fw-la anglicano_n he_o compare_v the_o kingdom_n at_o that_o time_n to_o a_o vine-yard_n spoil_v by_o every_o one_o that_o pass_v by_o and_o root_v up_o by_o the_o wild_a bore_n of_o the_o wood_n he_o say_v that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n like_o a_o gulf_n swallow_v up_o every_o man_n revenue_n quae_fw-la curia_fw-la instar_fw-la barathri_fw-la potestatem_fw-la habet_fw-la &_o consuetudinem_fw-la omnium_fw-la reditus_fw-la absorbendi_fw-la boner_n in_o his_o preface_n before_o gardiner_n book_n de_fw-fr vera_fw-la obedientia_fw-la say_v that_o the_o pope_n pray_v or_o spoil_n in_o england_n be_v equal_a almost_o to_o the_o king_n revenue_n the_o emperor_n as_o matth._n paris_n testify_v in_o henrico_n 3._o reprehend_v the_o king_n of_o england_n for_o suffer_v his_o country_n to_o be_v empoverish_v so_o shameful_o by_o the_o pope_n imperator_fw-la
matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3_o do_v testify_v alexander_n the_o three_o send_v the_o soldan_n fridericke_n barbarossaes_n portrayt_o then_o serve_v against_o the_o saracen_n persuade_v he_o to_o kill_v he_o if_o he_o will_v settle_v his_o affair_n gregory_n the_o 9_o invade_v the_o emperor_n dominion_n in_o italy_n and_o draw_v fridericke_n the_o 2._o out_o of_o asia_n to_o defend_v his_o own_o possession_n at_o home_n when_o he_o be_v almost_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o victory_n abroad_o last_o it_o be_v public_o know_v that_o they_o have_v set_v french_a and_o spanish_a together_o about_o the_o quarrel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n innocent_n the_o three_o by_o his_o excommunication_n of_o king_n john_n set_v both_o his_o subject_n and_o the_o french_a against_o he_o and_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o loss_n of_o normandy_n to_o the_o english_a julian_n the_o cardinal_n set_v the_o german_n against_o the_o bohemian_o paul_n the_o three_o be_v the_o principal_a motive_n of_o the_o war_n of_o charles_n the_o sift_n against_o the_o german_n and_o to_o shut_v up_o this_o discourse_n in_o few_o word_n not_o only_a nicholas_n machiavelli_n in_o his_o florentine_a history_n affirm_v but_o also_o all_o history_n testify_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o war_n and_o stir_n of_o europe_n that_o have_v be_v for_o this_o 4._o or_o 5._o hundred_o year_n last_o pass_v they_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o massacre_n of_o france_n of_o the_o trouble_n of_o the_o low-country_n of_o the_o late_a rebellion_n in_o england_n scotland_n and_o ireland_n of_o the_o contention_n betwixt_o french_a and_o spanish_a in_o italy_n of_o the_o persecution_n in_o germany_n and_o spain_n and_o other_o country_n four_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n by_o devise_v and_o confirm_v many_o order_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n by_o admit_v such_o swarm_n of_o idle_a lozel_n into_o order_n and_o maintain_v they_o by_o chant_v of_o mass_n for_o soul_n force_v they_o to_o forswear_v marriage_n have_v not_o only_o cause_v many_o unnatural_a murder_n but_o also_o hinder_v the_o propagation_n and_o increase_n of_o man_n they_o have_v also_o withdraw_v man_n from_o defence_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o place_v they_o in_o den_n of_o licentious_a idleness_n and_o lay_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o common_a defence_n upon_o few_o five_o exempt_n both_o the_o good_n and_o the_o person_n of_o religious_a man_n and_o clerk_n from_o common_a charge_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n they_o have_v weaken_v the_o state_n of_o prince_n and_o lay_v all_o the_o burden_n upon_o the_o weak_a part_n final_o by_o their_o idolatry_n they_o have_v displease_v god_n and_o by_o their_o perjury_n have_v make_v good_a the_o lewd_a cause_n of_o the_o turk_n therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o marvel_v if_o the_o christian_n have_v not_o prosper_v in_o their_o expedition_n into_o the_o holy_a land_n for_o what_o success_n can_v christian_n look_v for_o consider_v the_o notorious_a abuse_n commit_v in_o the_o army_n by_o worship_v idol_n blaspheme_v god_n holy_a name_n violate_v christ_n institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n by_o celebration_n of_o profane_a mass_n can_v ladislaus_n king_n of_o poland_n and_o his_o army_n prevail_v against_o the_o turk_n have_v begin_v the_o war_n contrary_a to_o article_n of_o peace_n solemn_o swear_v but_o let_v we_o maintain_v the_o religion_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o of_o antichrist_n and_o let_v we_o abolish_v the_o idolatrous_a worship_n of_o image_n and_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o let_v we_o abandon_v the_o damn_a mass_n and_o serve_v god_n as_o he_o have_v appoint_v and_o final_o let_v we_o not_o violate_v our_o promise_n and_o oath_n nor_o abuse_v god_n holy_a name_n and_o then_o no_o doubt_n but_o we_o shall_v prosper_v in_o all_o our_o enterprise_n against_o the_o turk_n or_o other_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n for_o hitherto_o not_o the_o turk_n force_n but_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o sin_n idolatry_n blasphemy_n and_o other_o abuse_n of_o christian_n have_v make_v they_o fly_v before_o their_o enemy_n and_o overthrow_v their_o army_n chap._n l._n that_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v much_o degenerate_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o paul_n write_v unto_o it_o excel_v in_o all_o piety_n and_o virtue_n and_o be_v famous_a throughout_o the_o world_n but_o as_o all_o thing_n else_o so_o both_o faith_n and_o virtue_n through_o tract_n of_o time_n faint_v and_o in_o the_o end_n begin_v to_o fail_v in_o that_o city_n of_o late_a time_n we_o find_v that_o neither_o that_o zeal_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n nor_o that_o integrity_n and_o honesty_n of_o manner_n which_o be_v in_o the_o ancient_a roman_n do_v continue_v in_o their_o posterity_n adrian_z the_o 6._o in_o his_o instruction_n give_v to_o his_o legate_n that_o be_v send_v into_o germany_n confess_v free_o that_o many_o and_o grievous_a offence_n for_o many_o year_n have_v be_v commit_v at_o rome_n and_o from_o the_o top_n of_o the_o pope_n crown_n pass_v down_o to_o the_o inferior_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o no_o man_n do_v his_o duty_n but_o that_o all_o go_v astray_o and_o none_o be_v void_a of_o fault_n plurimis_fw-la nunc_fw-la annis_fw-la say_v he_o graviter_fw-la multisque_fw-la modis_fw-la peccatum_fw-la est_fw-la romae_fw-la &_o inde_fw-la à_fw-la pontificio_fw-la culmine_fw-la malum_fw-la hoc_fw-la atque_fw-la lues_fw-la ad_fw-la inferiores_fw-la omnes_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la prafectos_fw-la defluxit_fw-la neminem_fw-la enim_fw-la esse_fw-la qui_fw-la suum_fw-la faciat_fw-la munus_fw-la aberrasse_n omnes_fw-la &_o ne_fw-la unum_fw-la quidem_fw-la ex_fw-la omni_fw-la numero_fw-la vacare_fw-la culpa_fw-la duarenus_n in_o praefat_fw-la in_o lib._n the_o eccles_n minist_n &_o benefic_n confesf_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o such_o as_o be_v call_v churchman_n be_v decay_v and_o that_o the_o late_a constitution_n of_o pope_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o first_o illud_fw-la say_v he_o fateri_fw-la velinuiti_fw-la cogimur_fw-la mores_fw-la hominum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la titulo_fw-la insignitorum_fw-la ita_fw-la paulatim_fw-la degenerasse_fw-la ut_fw-la posteriores_fw-la constitutiones_fw-la pontificumfere_fw-la anterioribus_fw-la cedant_fw-la guicciardine_n lib._n hist_o 2._o show_v how_o the_o authority_n of_o christian_a religion_n grow_v every_o day_n less_o and_o less_o by_o reason_n that_o in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n man_n be_v altogether_o depart_v from_o ancient_a custom_n le_z cose_z della_fw-it chiesa_fw-mi say_v he_o allontanatesi_n totalment_fw-it dalli_n antichi_fw-it costumi_fw-la facevano_fw-la ogni_fw-la di_fw-it minore_fw-la l'authoritâ_fw-la della_fw-it christiana_n religione_fw-la machiavelli_n in_o his_o florentine_a history_n direct_v to_o clement_n the_o 7._o confess_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o mutation_n that_o have_v happen_v in_o christian_a religion_n great_a scandale_n and_o discord_n have_v grow_v in_o the_o world_n many_o of_o the_o chief_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n say_v picus_n mirandula_n in_o orat_fw-la ad_fw-la leon._n x._o after_o who_o example_n other_o ought_v to_o conform_v themselves_o have_v either_o little_a or_o no_o religion_n no_o order_n in_o their_o live_n no_o shame_n nor_o modesty_n apud_fw-la plerosque_fw-la religionis_fw-la nostra_fw-la primores_fw-la ad_fw-la quorum_fw-la exemplum_fw-la componi_fw-la &_o formari_fw-la plebs_fw-la ignara_fw-la debuisset_fw-la aut_fw-la nullus_fw-la aut_fw-la certè_fw-la exiguus_fw-la deicultus_fw-la nulla_fw-la bene_fw-la vivendi_fw-la ratio_fw-la atque_fw-la institutio_fw-la nullus_fw-la pudor_fw-la nulla_fw-la modestia_fw-la platina_n in_o gregor_n 4._o wish_v that_o lewes_n pius_n in_o his_o time_n have_v be_v alive_a so_o much_o do_v the_o church_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o his_o law_n res_fw-it &_o pietatemiampridem_fw-la perdidimus_fw-la say_v auentinus_n lib._n 3._o annal_n boiorum_fw-la virtuti_fw-la nullus_fw-la est_fw-la honos_fw-la inuicem_fw-la invidere_fw-la fraudare_fw-la fallere_fw-la longinqua_fw-la consuetudo_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v we_o have_v long_o since_o lose_v our_o substance_n and_o piety_n there_o be_v no_o honour_n give_v to_o virtue_n we_o have_v use_v to_o envy_v one_o another_o and_o to_o practice_v fraud_n and_o deceit_n a_o long_a time_n together_o primitivi_fw-la theologi_fw-la say_v petrus_n de_fw-fr aliaco_n lib._n de_fw-la reformat_fw-la eccles_n ecclesiam_fw-la aedificaverunt_fw-la quam_fw-la nunc_fw-la quidam_fw-la baritatores_fw-la destruxerunt_fw-la the_o divine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n build_v the_o church_n but_o now_o certain_a late_a barator_n have_v destroy_v it_o and_o that_o this_o be_v true_a it_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o diverse_a particular_n in_o time_n past_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n suffer_v for_o true_a religion_n now_o they_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o all_o such_o as_o profess_v truth_n the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n feed_v christ_n flock_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o christian_a emperor_n now_o the_o pope_n kill_v christ_n lamb_n and_o set_v their_o foot_n upon_o the_o neck_n of_o emperor_n in_o the_o
primitive_a church_n holy_a scripture_n be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n and_o take_v only_o for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o now_o in_o the_o romish_a church_n lie_v legend_n and_o fable_n be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n and_o lie_v and_o uncertain_a tradition_n be_v make_v equal_a to_o scripture_n in_o time_n past_o it_o be_v account_v folly_n to_o read_v scripture_n in_o tongue_n unknowen_a and_o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o it_o be_v unprofitable_a to_o pray_v in_o a_o strange_a language_n but_o now_o the_o romanist_n both_o read_v scripture_n and_o pray_v in_o language_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o multitude_n and_o yet_o defend_v it_o as_o well_o do_v in_o ancient_a time_n no_o man_n ever_o believe_v either_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v make_v to_o we_o authentical_a by_o the_o pope_n determination_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n determination_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v certain_a now_o all_o be_v turn_v upside_o down_o scripture_n be_v make_v uncerteine_a and_o obscure_a and_o the_o pope_n determination_n be_v make_v most_o liquid_a and_o certain_a the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n preach_v diligent_o live_v upright_o deal_v with_o their_o people_n merciful_o now_o the_o popish_a bishop_n preach_v not_o nor_o lead_v their_o life_n according_a to_o their_o profession_n but_o contrariwise_o live_v scandalous_o and_o be_v the_o only_a boucher_n to_o murder_v all_o that_o shall_v either_o reprehend_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o church_n or_o their_o corruption_n in_o manner_n and_o the_o powderman_n and_o undermine_v papist_n follow_v their_o step_n ancient_a christian_n suffer_v most_o cruel_a torment_n and_o death_n because_o they_o will_v not_o worship_v image_n now_o the_o romanist_n put_v all_o to_o death_n that_o will_v not_o worship_v image_n the_o ancient_a roman_n according_a to_o s._n paul_n doctrine_n believe_v not_o to_o be_v instify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o god_n law_n the_o late_a romanistes_n hope_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o pope_n law_n they_o look_v for_o no_o peace_n by_o their_o own_o satisfaction_n but_o by_o the_o redemption_n wrought_v by_o christ_n jesus_n these_o modern_a fellow_n believe_v that_o they_o can_v satisfy_v for_o their_o own_o sin_n and_o trust_v in_o the_o redemption_n procure_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n indulgence_n the_o roman_n unto_o who_o s._n paul_n write_v be_v obedient_a to_o king_n these_o loose_a the_o bond_n between_o king_n and_o their_o subject_n and_o stir_v up_o traitor_n to_o blow_v up_o their_o prince_n they_o diligent_o observe_v christ_n institution_n in_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o neither_o spit_n in_o the_o face_n of_o christian_n baptize_v nor_o steal_v away_o the_o cup_n from_o the_o communicant_n the_o modern_a romish_a priest_n spit_v on_o those_o who_o they_o baptize_v and_o refuse_v to_o administer_v the_o cup_n to_o other_o than_o themselves_o final_o they_o be_v digress_v from_o the_o ancient_a roman_n in_o all_o those_o particular_n both_o concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n wherein_o i_o have_v show_v that_o they_o differ_v from_o ancient_a catholic_n and_o have_v devise_v mere_a novelty_n chap._n li._n that_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v be_v invisible_a in_o old_a time_n much_o do_v our_o adversary_n boast_v of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n suppose_v because_o the_o scripture_n speak_v much_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o all_o that_o honour_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o late_a time_n but_o while_o they_o mistake_v thing_n spiritual_a for_o thing_n corporal_a and_o external_a and_o suppose_v thing_n untrue_a all_o this_o their_o boast_n and_o glory_n will_v turn_v to_o their_o great_a prejudice_n and_o shame_n for_o first_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v rather_o in_o inward_a virtue_n then_o in_o outward_a show_n and_o apparel_n second_o be_v it_o that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o see_v and_o apparent_a to_o the_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o the_o modern_a romish_a church_n and_o the_o glory_n thereof_o be_v never_o see_v either_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o ancient_a christian_n for_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o a_o multitude_n of_o people_n profess_v the_o modern_a say_v of_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n &_o communicate_v with_o the_o same_o in_o sacrament_n and_o subiect_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n holiness_n this_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la and_o of_o canisius_n in_o his_o catechism_n c._n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o symbolo_fw-la and_o i_o hope_v will_v not_o be_v deny_v by_o any_o papist_n but_o such_o a_o church_n shall_v never_o be_v show_v in_o ancient_a time_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v prove_v by_o invincible_a reason_n for_o first_o we_o find_v not_o during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n any_o such_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o pope_n nor_o any_o such_o shoulder_n as_o the_o cardinal_n nor_o any_o such_o rot_a member_n as_o the_o chantery_n priest_n sing_v mass_n for_o soul_n depart_v as_o monk_n live_v in_o herd_n like_o swine_n as_o friar_n beg_v for_o fashion_n sake_n and_o yet_o abound_v in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a 2._o the_o pope_n with_o his_o triple_a crown_n two_o sword_n cross_v pantofle_n and_o his_o guard_n of_o suizar_n and_o purple_a cardinal_n follow_v he_o begin_v only_o of_o late_a time_n to_o be_v visible_a if_o such_o a_o sight_n have_v appear_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n they_o will_v have_v wonder_v at_o it_o as_o a_o thing_n most_o monstrous_a and_o unbeseeming_a he_o that_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o peter_n 3._o while_n s._n peter_n live_v no_o man_n ever_o see_v a_o church_n persecute_v of_o christ_n disciple_n and_o deliver_v they_o over_o to_o have_v their_o throat_n cut_v by_o the_o secular_a power_n nor_o do_v either_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n imprison_v torment_n or_o kill_v such_o christian_n as_o be_v not_o of_o their_o faction_n and_o opinion_n 4._o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v neither_o excommunicate_a king_n nor_o assoil_v their_o subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n command_v they_o upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n to_o rise_v up_o in_o arm_n against_o they_o and_o to_o depose_v they_o the_o romish_a church_n therefore_o which_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n be_v not_o then_o visible_a neither_o can_v any_o mass-priest_n show_v we_o where_o in_o old_a time_n miner_n and_o powder-man_n seek_v to_o blow_v up_o the_o principal_a man_n of_o the_o state_n 5._o so_o long_o as_o the_o primitive_a church_n continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n and_o step_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n the_o same_o be_v rule_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o canon_n of_o counsel_n and_o then_o the_o decretales_fw-la of_o gregory_n the_o 9_o boniface_n the_o 8._o clement_n the_o 5._o john_n the_o 22._o and_o other_o late_a pope_n be_v not_o in_o the_o world_n who_o can_v then_o say_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n order_v by_o these_o decretales_fw-la be_v then_o visible_a 6._o the_o moderno_fw-la romish_a church_n beside_o the_o two_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n believe_v other_o 5._o sacrament_n and_o hope_v as_o well_o to_o be_v save_v by_o grease_v when_o they_o lie_v a_o die_a as_o by_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o such_o a_o church_n be_v altogether_o invisible_a both_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o long_o after_o 7._o now_o papist_n believe_v that_o christian_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n swallow_v down_o christ_n body_n into_o their_o stomach_n nay_o they_o teach_v that_o dog_n hog_n and_o brute_n beast_n eat_v consecrate_v host_n do_v also_o devour_v christ_n body_n but_o such_o a_o company_n of_o cannibal_n and_o blasphemer_n against_o christian_a religion_n be_v never_o take_v for_o christ_n church_n for_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n 8._o the_o roman_a church_n command_v christian_n to_o keep_v the_o feast_n day_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n and_o other_o saint_n to_o hear_v mass_n upon_o ember_n day_n in_o lent_n and_o friday_n to_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n to_o go_v to_o auricular_a confession_n at_o the_o least_o once_o a_o year_n and_o not_o to_o celebrate_v marriage_n upon_o certain_a day_n but_o if_o all_o the_o monk_n and_o friar_n in_o the_o world_n be_v set_v to_o seek_v such_o a_o church_n and_o if_o the_o masspriest_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v join_v with_o they_o yet_o can_v they_o not_o find_v such_o a_o church_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n 9_o in_o the_o romish_a missal_n the_o priest_n pray_v that_o god_n will_v be_v please_v to_o accept_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n
the_o canonist_n contrary_a to_o the_o schoolman_n of_o late_a in_o england_n the_o jebusite_n and_o secular_a priest_n do_v contend_v about_o diverse_a question_n and_o now_o the_o difference_n be_v rather_o stop_v then_o end_v 7._o in_o the_o koran_n the_o turk_n pretend_v that_o mahomet_n do_v diverse_a miracle_n we_o read_v also_o that_o the_o gentile_n tell_v of_o diverse_a wonder_n do_v by_o their_o god_n and_o their_o soothsaiers_a and_o priest_n navius_n as_o livy_n tell_v we_o cut_v a_o whetstone_n in_o sunder_o with_o a_o razor_n the_o papist_n therefore_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o stand_v so_o much_o upon_o miracle_n 8._o mahomet_n also_o be_v say_v to_o have_v foretell_v thing_n to_o come_v and_o the_o gentile_n allege_v innumerable_a oracle_n of_o their_o god_n concern_v future_a matter_n which_o as_o they_o say_v be_v verify_v by_o the_o event_n if_o you_o compare_v the_o prophecy_n of_o the_o legendary_a saint_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o the_o other_o 9_o in_o temporal_a matter_n both_o turk_n and_o heathen_a emperor_n have_v have_v far_o better_a success_n than_o the_o papist_n the_o roman_a emperor_n be_v pagan_n rule_v the_o world_n and_o now_o the_o empire_n of_o turk_n be_v more_o large_a then_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n nay_o of_o late_a time_n the_o pope_n have_v make_v few_o attempt_n against_o the_o turk_n that_o have_v prosper_v if_o then_o we_o judge_v of_o matter_n according_a to_o outward_a success_n then_o be_v the_o papist_n utter_o overthrow_v 9_o the_o turk_n and_o paynim_n have_v be_v better_o unite_v among_o themselves_o than_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o adherent_n in_o the_o romish_a church_n we_o read_v of_o 27._o or_o more_o schism_n but_o neither_o have_v the_o idolatrous_a priest_n nor_o the_o caliphaes_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o turk_n be_v so_o divide_v 10._o neither_o if_o we_o look_v among_o the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o turkish_a priest_n shall_v we_o find_v more_o perjure_a luxurious_a and_o abominable_a person_n than_o john_n the_o 12._o landus_n sergius_n the_o three_o gregory_z the_o 7._o sixtus_n the_o four_o alexander_z the_o sixth_o paul_n the_o second_o and_o three_o and_o the_o bougerly_a monk_n and_o masspriest_n holiness_n therefore_o can_v no_o more_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n then_o of_o the_o turk_n and_o paynim_n and_o their_o congregation_n nay_o among_o the_o turk_n and_o paynim_n we_o never_o read_v any_o such_o bloody_a execution_n as_o be_v intend_v by_o the_o popish_a faction_n in_o england_n against_o the_o king_n and_o his_o house_n and_o the_o whole_a state_n 11._o the_o paynim_n and_o turk_n be_v judge_n the_o papist_n will_v be_v take_v for_o heretic_n as_o well_o as_o other_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n by_o the_o papist_n 12._o it_o be_v before_o show_v that_o turk_n do_v as_o well_o esteem_v of_o scripture_n as_o papist_n and_o no_o less_o do_v value_n their_o tradition_n than_o they_o the_o heathen_a also_o with_o great_a solemnity_n look_v into_o their_o oracle_n and_o book_n of_o sibylle_n and_o have_v they_o in_o more_o reverence_n than_o the_o papist_n have_v their_o legend_n and_o decretales_fw-la 13._o the_o turk_n no_o less_o esteem_v their_o saint_n and_o martyr_n than_o the_o papist_n esteem_v such_o as_o die_v in_o the_o pope_n quarrel_n heathen_a man_n also_o stand_v always_o much_o upon_o their_o forefather_n and_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o brag_v of_o old_a custom_n than_o the_o papist_n who_o fashion_n for_o the_o most_o part_n have_v but_o a_o late_a beginning_n 14._o the_o papist_n we_o know_v be_v a_o sect_n go_v out_o of_o christ_n church_n and_o rise_v long_o after_o christ_n time_n have_v not_o perfect_v the_o confuse_a babel_n until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n but_o the_o heathen_a idolater_n do_v fetch_v their_o pedigree_n from_o man_n that_o live_v before_o moses_n his_o law_n and_o the_o turk_n pretend_v great_a antiquity_n and_o aver_v that_o the_o idolatrous_a papist_n be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o not_o they_o 15._o the_o mutability_n of_o popery_n be_v easy_o prove_v by_o their_o change_n of_o law_n alteration_n of_o govemement_n variety_n of_o old_a and_o new_a missal_n breviaries_n and_o other_o ritual_a book_n by_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o doctrine_n of_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o father_n by_o their_o mutable_a rite_n saint_n saint_n day_n and_o calendar_n but_o the_o heathen_a allege_v that_o they_o and_o their_o ancestor_n have_v always_o persist_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o their_o god_n and_o the_o turk_n do_v firm_o observe_v their_o koran_n without_o addition_n or_o detraction_n 16._o where_o the_o papist_n talk_v of_o their_o infallible_a judge_n the_o heathen_a idolater_n and_o turk_n have_v cause_n to_o laugh_v at_o they_o for_o who_o be_v so_o devoid_a of_o sense_n to_o suppose_v that_o a_o pope_n that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o matter_n of_o faith_n learning_n and_o virtue_n be_v a_o judge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o of_o matter_n of_o learning_n do_v blind_a man_n judge_v of_o colour_n or_o dease_fw-mi man_n of_o sound_n the_o turk_n assure_v themselves_o that_o mahomet_n be_v a_o far_o better_a judge_n than_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o old_a roman_n doubt_v not_o but_o that_o their_o augur_n and_o priest_n know_v more_o in_o religion_n than_o the_o late_a pope_n final_o while_o the_o papist_n leave_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n consonant_n to_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n according_a to_o christ_n institution_n and_o other_o proper_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n stand_v whole_o upon_o the_o lustre_n of_o the_o world_n and_o outward_a mark_n and_o sign_n of_o their_o satanical_a synagogue_n they_o allege_v nothing_o which_o the_o very_a heathen_a idolater_n and_o turk_n can_v bring_v with_o better_a reason_n than_o they_o chap._n liii_o that_o true_a papist_n can_v be_v true_a nor_o loyal_a subject_n among_o other_o mark_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o motive_n to_o popery_n bristol_n allege_v this_o for_o one_o that_o it_o make_v obedient_a subject_n but_o if_o we_o look_v either_o into_o the_o practice_n or_o law_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n we_o shall_v rather_o find_v this_o allegation_n to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o whorish_a impudence_n of_o that_o strumpet_n that_o have_v abuse_v the_o world_n with_o her_o false_a doctrine_n and_o abomination_n than_o obedience_n of_o subject_n to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n for_o first_o who_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v they_o that_o divide_a italy_n from_o the_o eastern_a empire_n and_o cause_v the_o italian_n to_o withdraw_v their_o obedience_n and_o to_o seize_v on_o the_o emperor_n revenue_n be_v they_o not_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o complice_n who_o upon_o pretence_n of_o the_o emperor_n dislike_v of_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n cause_v the_o emperor_n subject_n to_o rebel_v and_o begin_v to_o advance_v the_o authority_n credit_n and_o state_n of_o the_o pope_n again_o who_o call_v in_o the_o french_a against_o the_o greek_n and_o lombard_n but_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n three_o who_o cause_v the_o son_n of_o henry_n the_o 4._o and_o frederick_n the_o 2._o and_o of_o lewis_n the_o piteous_a to_o rebel_v against_o their_o parent_n but_o the_o pope_n and_o popish_a prelate_n four_o who_o stir_v up_o the_o subject_n of_o henry_n the_o 4._o and_o 5._o of_o frederick_n the_o 1._o and_o 2._o of_o lewis_n of_o bavier_n of_o philip_n otho_n and_o other_o emperor_n to_o take_v arm_n against_o their_o sovereign_a lord_n but_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o agent_n final_o who_o oppugn_v king_n john_n of_o england_n and_o fight_v against_o the_o emperor_n former_o name_v be_v they_o not_o all_o papist_n and_o the_o pope_n vassal_n and_o the_o former_a emperor_n and_o king_n subject_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o by_o the_o pope_n excommunication_n they_o be_v deter_v from_o their_o obedience_n and_o duty_n and_o honour_v antichrist_n for_o christ_n vicar_n at_o his_o commandment_n they_o oppugn_v their_o lawful_a prince_n to_o come_v near_o to_o ourselves_o and_o our_o time_n we_o sinde_v that_o the_o rebel_n of_o yorkshire_n and_o lincolnshire_n in_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o his_o day_n be_v papist_n for_o their_o ensign_n be_v chalice_n and_o masse-cake_n and_o the_o five_o wound_n and_o their_o principal_a stirrer_n be_v monk_n and_o masspriest_n and_o their_o leader_n man_n superstitious_o affect_v likewise_o the_o rebel_n in_o devonshire_n and_o cornwall_n in_o king_n edward_n day_n be_v man_n whole_o addict_v to_o popery_n they_o will_v have_v their_o mass_n and_o their_o dirge_n their_o cross_n and_o their_o banner_n their_o greasing_n and_o their_o popish_a trinket_n
not_o possible_a a_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v unless_o he_o believe_v the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o this_o catholic_a faith_n the_o papist_n believe_v not_o entire_o for_o neither_o do_v they_o give_v to_o christ_n humane_a flesh_n nor_o make_v he_o a_o perfect_a man_n thrust_v his_o body_n into_o a_o small_a piece_n of_o bread_n or_o rather_o into_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n where_o it_o be_v neither_o see_v nor_o feel_v as_o other_o man_n body_n be_v further_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v his_o ascension_n or_o that_o he_o shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n to_o judge_v quick_a &_o dead_a as_o be_v contain_v in_o that_o creedo_fw-la make_v their_o follower_n believe_v that_o his_o body_n be_v upon_o every_o altar_n and_o not_o be_v able_a to_o deny_v that_o he_o shall_v come_v out_o of_o the_o pix_n see_v they_o teach_v he_o be_v there_o our_o saviour_n christ_n matth_n 15._o teach_v we_o that_o such_o worship_n god_n in_o vain_a as_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n man_n precept_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n as_o it_o add_v to_o ancient_a catholic_a religion_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o mass_n of_o humane_a invention_n devise_n and_o precept_n their_o decretales_fw-la be_v the_o pope_n devise_n their_o form_n of_o worship_n contain_v in_o the_o missal_n and_o breviaries_n be_v mere_o humane_a from_o man_n devise_n proceed_v the_o popish_a worship_n of_o angel_n saint_n image_n the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o resolution_n of_o case_n of_o conscience_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o pope_n law_n final_o the_o turn_n skipping_n heave_n greasing_n spitting_n and_o other_o ceremony_n of_o masspriest_n and_o their_o follower_n proceed_v from_o man_n invention_n popery_n therefore_o by_o christ_n rule_n be_v nothing_o but_o weariness_n and_o vexation_n of_o man_n soul_n while_o they_o seek_v to_o serve_v god_n by_o those_o mean_n by_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-fr papa_n do_v 40._o we_o learn_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v remiss_a and_o negligent_a in_o his_o office_n and_o silent_a in_o teach_v and_o lead_v innumerable_a people_n with_o he_o into_o hell_n but_o if_o the_o papist_n be_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o follow_v he_o how_o can_v they_o escape_v when_o he_o lead_v they_o into_o hell_n that_o they_o run_v not_o headlong_o into_o hell_n themselves_o also_o if_o then_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v scripture_n nor_o father_n yet_o their_o own_o decree_n may_v teach_v they_o that_o follow_v the_o pope_n innumerable_a papist_n run_v headlong_o into_o hell_n beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o boniface_n in_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-mi papa_n do_v 40._o diverse_a reason_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o papist_n hold_v firm_o and_o positive_o the_o erroneous_a doctrine_n of_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v save_v for_o first_o no_o man_n can_v come_v unto_o the_o father_n but_o by_o christ_n jesus_n as_o he_o testify_v of_o himself_o john_n 14_o he_o show_v also_o that_o he_o be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 2._o teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n but_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n but_o the_o papist_n as_o they_o pretend_v come_v to_o god_n not_o only_o by_o christ_n but_o also_o by_o the_o virgin_n mary_n by_o angel_n and_o saint_n they_o seek_v out_o also_o new_a way_n &_o content_v not_o themselves_o with_o such_o as_o christ_n teach_v us._n final_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n and_o every_o mass-priest_n by_o his_o mass_n be_v able_a to_o redeem_v man_n soul_n second_o he_o that_o build_v his_o faith_n upon_o other_o foundation_n than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n do_v build_v upon_o sand_n and_o not_o upon_o a_o firm_a foundation_n but_o the_o papist_n build_v their_o faith_n upon_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la upon_o unwritten_a and_o uncerteine_a tradition_n upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n upon_o miracle_n and_o prophecy_n report_v in_o the_o romish_a legend_n and_o such_o like_a fable_n do_v they_o not_o then_o build_v upon_o rumour_n foundation_n three_o the_o papist_n hope_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n and_o to_o be_v save_v by_o their_o work_n but_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 3._o teach_v we_o that_o man_n be_v justify_v without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o rom._n 6._o that_o eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n four_o the_o law_n of_o god_n pronounce_v he_o accurse_v that_o abide_v not_o in_o all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o and_o a_o plain_a matter_n it_o be_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v that_o wilful_o break_v god_n law_n and_o never_o sorow_v nor_o crave_v pardon_n for_o his_o transgression_n but_o the_o papist_n teach_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o god_n law_n and_o enforce_v their_o follower_n to_o break_v it_o and_o that_o in_o diverse_a point_n god_n command_v we_o to_o have_v no_o other_o god_n but_o he_o but_o they_o honour_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o cross_v with_o divine_a worship_n they_o do_v also_o impart_v god_n worship_n to_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o to_o saint_n he_o forbid_v the_o take_n of_o god_n holy_a name_n in_o vain_a the_o pope_n of_o rome_n do_v dispense_v with_o oath_n and_o enforce_v man_n oftentimes_o to_o break_v they_o god_n command_v we_o to_o honour_v our_o parent_n the_o pope_n set_v the_o child_n against_o their_o parent_n final_o they_o allow_v public_a stew_n and_o set_v up_o shop_n of_o usury_n and_o massacre_v innocent_a christian_n direct_o against_o god_n commandment_n and_o that_o without_o all_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n or_o feel_v of_o their_o sin_n five_o papist_n hope_v to_o obtain_v remishon_fw-mi of_o sin_n by_o their_o own_o satisfaction_n by_o indulgence_n by_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n by_o mass_n by_o auricular_a confess_v on_o and_o popish_a absolution_n of_o masseprieste_n and_o diverse_a humane_a devise_n but_o rely_v upon_o these_o break_a reed_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n for_o they_o to_o be_v save_v for_o without_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n jesus_n apply_v to_o we_o by_o true_a faith_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n six_o without_o true_a faith_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o please_v god_n but_o their_o perverse_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o innumerable_a heresy_n of_o papist_n do_v declare_v that_o they_o have_v no_o true_a faith_n seventh_o the_o prophet_n david_n psal_n 15._o demand_v who_o shall_v rest_v upon_o god_n holy_a mountain_n answer_v among_o other_o thing_n he_o that_o slander_v not_o with_o his_o tongue_n nor_o do_v evil_a to_o his_o neighbour_n but_o the_o papist_n as_o be_v former_o show_v have_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o uphold_v their_o ruinous_a state_n but_o by_o lie_n and_o slander_n treason_n rebellion_n murder_n and_o massacre_n of_o innocent_a christian_n final_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o shall_v be_v save_v that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o hold_v heresy_n repugnant_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o other_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n but_o the_o papist_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v only_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o their_o salvation_n as_o if_o he_o have_v merit_v only_o that_o they_o may_v sauce_n themselves_o they_o teach_v also_o that_o man_n be_v justify_v formal_o by_o their_o own_o work_n &_o that_o their_o suppose_a sacrament_n and_o their_o pilgrimage_n and_o voluntary_a observance_n of_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o work_v perform_v according_a to_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n do_v justify_v last_o they_o teach_v and_o believe_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n to_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n of_o repentance_n and_o good_a work_n be_v they_o not_o then_o in_o miserable_a case_n now_o if_o any_o man_n ask_v what_o be_v then_o become_v of_o all_o those_o that_o either_o now_o die_v or_o in_o time_n past_a be_v dead_a in_o place_n where_o popery_n be_v or_o have_v be_v profess_v i_o answer_v that_o of_o those_o that_o hold_v the_o foundation_n and_o live_v well_o we_o hope_v well_o but_o we_o deny_v that_o such_o as_o live_v before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n hold_v popery_n positive_o we_o hope_v also_o that_o many_o there_o be_v among_o the_o papist_n now_o which_o conform_v themselves_o to_o they_o in_o outward_a ceremony_n and_o yet_o believe_v not_o the_o error_n of_o popery_n positive_o but_o hold_v themselves_o to_o the_o old_a apostolic_a say_v and_o of_o these_o man_n salvation_n we_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o despair_v god_n grant_v that_o the_o